Selected quad for the lemma: kingdom_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
kingdom_n king_n lord_n sceptre_n 2,040 5 10.9794 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A68730 Certain general reasons, prouing the lawfulnesse of the Oath of allegiance, written by R.S. priest, to his priuat friend. Whereunto is added, the treatise of that learned man, M. William Barclay, concerning the temporall power of the pope. And with these is ioyned the sermon of M. Theophilus Higgons, preached at Pauls Crosse the third of March last, because it containeth something of like argument Sheldon, Richard, d. 1642?; Barclay, William, 1546 or 7-1608. De potestate Papæ. English.; Higgons, Theophilus, 1578?-1659. Sermon preached at Pauls Crosse the third of March, 1610.; Barclay, John, 1582-1621. 1611 (1611) STC 22393; ESTC S117169 172,839 246

There are 27 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

direct_o any_o temporal_a power_n but_o only_o spiritual_a but_o that_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o spiritual_a he_o have_v at_o least_o indirect_o a_o certain_a power_n and_o that_o very_o great_a to_o dispose_v of_o the_o temporality_n of_o all_o christian_n and_o so_o look_v what_o they_o do_v allow_v the_o pope_n by_o a_o direct_a course_n the_o same_o do_v these_o man_n give_v he_o by_o a_o oblique_a and_o indirect_a mean_n so_o as_o the_o mean_n only_o be_v diverse_a but_o the_o effect_n be_v the_o same_o for_o my_o part_n when_o i_o consider_v of_o this_o question_n i_o find_v that_o neither_o of_o their_o opinion_n as_o touch_v the_o temporal_a power_n have_v any_o certain_a ground_n and_o yet_o if_o they_o be_v compare_v together_o that_o the_o canoniste_n opinion_n may_v more_o easy_o be_v maintain_v then_o the_o divine_n especial_o see_v it_o be_v not_o contrary_a to_o the_o order_n of_o nature_n according_a to_o which_o a_o man_n by_o his_o right_n exercise_v authority_n grant_v unto_o he_o over_o other_o and_o therefore_o it_o contain_v nothing_o unpossible_a but_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o divine_n as_o it_o be_v propound_v by_o their_o own_o side_n overturn_v the_o natural_a course_n of_o thing_n which_o will_v that_o no_o man_n use_v any_o power_n or_o authority_n over_o other_o which_o be_v neither_o by_o name_n grant_v to_o he_o nor_o be_v any_o whit_n necessary_a to_o the_o effect_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v commit_v to_o his_o trust_n therefore_o these_o divine_n do_v indeed_o very_o well_o refute_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o canonist_n but_o for_o all_o that_o with_o their_o leave_n they_o think_v not_o a_o whit_n the_o better_a themselves_o whereby_o a_o man_n may_v see_v how_o much_o more_o easy_a it_o be_v to_o find_v a_o untruth_n in_o other_o man_n write_n then_o to_o defend_v a_o truth_n in_o his_o own_o there_o be_v also_o even_o among_o themselves_o a_o contention_n touch_v this_o point_n for_o many_o of_o they_o have_v join_v themselves_o with_o the_o canonist_n either_o for_o that_o they_o be_v deceive_v with_o a_o show_n of_o truth_n or_o that_o bear_v too_o much_o and_o that_o a_o very_a blind_a affection_n to_o peter_n sea_n which_o indeed_o be_v worthy_a all_o honour_n they_o will_v also_o grace_v it_o with_o this_o title_n of_o power_n and_o dignity_n or_o be_v oblige_v by_o some_o speciciall_a favour_n of_o the_o pope_n have_v by_o this_o endeavour_n of_o thankfulness_n desire_v to_o draw_v their_o good_a opinion_n close_o to_o themselves_o i_o will_v not_o say_v to_o gain_v they_o through_o this_o unreasonable_a flattery_n of_o they_o and_o among_o these_o be_v one_o who_o be_v late_o spring_v out_o of_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o oratrie_n have_v step_v forth_o as_o a_o bozim_n sharp_a abettour_n for_o the_o canonist_n above_o other_o man_n who_o therefore_o a_o learned_a man_n &_o a_o famous_a preacher_n as_o any_o be_v among_o the_o jesu●tes_n when_o i_o ask_v he_o what_o he_o think_v of_o this_o opinion_n of_o bozius_n he_o call_v he_o a_o pope_n parasite_n for_o in_o his_o book_n he_o do_v earnest_o maintain_v that_o all_o kingly_a power_n and_o authority_n and_o lordship_n of_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v in_o earth_n be_v give_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o that_o what_o power_n soever_o whersoever_o in_o the_o world_n temporal_a king_n and_o prince_n aswell_o believe_v as_o unbelieved_a have_v do_v whole_o depend_v of_o the_o pope_n and_o so_o far_o as_o concern_v temporal_a execution_n be_v derive_v from_o he_o to_o they_o so_o that_o he_o as_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n may_v give_v and_o take_v kingdom_n and_o principality_n to_o who_o and_o where_o he_o will_v although_o no_o man_n know_v why_o he_o do_v so_o and_o therefore_o say_v he_o he_o may_v adjudge_v and_o bequeath_v the_o west_n indies_n of_o castille_n and_o the_o east_n indies_n of_o portugal_n although_o all_o man_n understand_v not_o the_o coherence_n of_o the_o reason_n whereby_o they_o be_v dispose_v as_o we_o say_v before_o and_o therefore_o be_v embolden_v with_o a_o confidence_n of_o maintain_v this_o opinion_n he_o do_v grievous_o accuse_v many_o excellent_a divine_n among_o who_o be_v that_o worthy_a man_n bellarmine_n who_o can_v never_o worthy_o be_v commend_v &_o 1●_n call_v they_o new_a divine_n &_o affirm_v ult._n that_o they_o teach_v matter_n that_o be_v notorious_o false_a and_o contrary_a to_o all_o truth_n because_o they_o say_v that_o christ_n as_o man_n be_v not_o a_o temporal_a king_n neither_o have_v any_o temporal_a dominion_n in_o earth_n nor_o exercise_v any_o kingly_a power_n for_o by_o these_o assertion_n the_o principal_a foundation_n of_o bozius_n his_o dotage_n be_v overthrow_v when_o as_o these_o great_a divine_n affirm_v that_o they_o be_v most_o true_a and_o confirm_v by_o the_o own_o testimony_n of_o our_o saviour_n the_o fox_n say_v he_o have_v 9_o hole_n and_o the_o bird_n of_o heaven_n nest_n but_o the_o son_n of_o man_n have_v no_o where_o to_o lay_v his_o head_n where_o then_o be_v his_o kingdom_n where_o be_v his_o temporal_a dominion_n who_o can_v conceive_v and_o imagine_v that_o there_o be_v a_o king_n or_o a_o lord_n who_o have_v neither_o kingdom_n nor_o lordship_n in_o the_o universal_a world_n we_o know_v that_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v king_n of_o glory_n the_o king_n of_o king_n the_o lord_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o of_o all_o thing_n reign_v everlasting_o together_o with_o the_o father_n &_o the_o holy_a spirit_n but_o what_o be_v this_o to_o a_o temporal_a kingdom_n what_o be_v this_o to_o a_o crown_n and_o sceptre_n of_o a_o temporal_a majesty_n certain_o i_o have_v peruse_v all_o that_o bozius_n have_v deliver_v to_o this_o purpose_n but_o i_o have_v not_o find_v any_o sound_a reason_n for_o the_o confirm_v of_o his_o purpose_n nothing_o that_o be_v not_o corrupt_v with_o the_o mixture_n of_o fallary_n and_o sophistication_n nothing_o ground_v upon_o ancient_a and_o approve_a authority_n nothing_o but_o deprave_a with_o a_o gloss_n of_o a_o devise_a interpretation_n before_o this_o time_n henricus_n segutianus_n cardinal_n of_o hostia_fw-la be_v entangle_v with_o the_o same_o error_n who_o new_a and_o strange_a opinion_n at_o that_o time_n be_v think_v within_o a_o while_n after_o to_o have_v inflame_v beyond_o all_o measure_n as_o it_o be_v with_o new_a firebrand_n of_o ambition_n boniface_n the_o 8._o a_o man_n exceed_v desirous_a of_o glory_n but_o the_o case_n be_v at_o this_o time_n very_o well_o alter_v because_o that_o opinion_n of_o hostiensis_n which_o afterward_o the_o canonist_n follow_v &_o bozius_n now_o embrace_v be_v upon_o very_a ground_a reason_n condemn_v by_o certain_a divine_n and_o also_o for_o that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n have_v at_o this_o day_n such_o a_o chief_a bishop_n i_o mean_v clement_n the_o eight_o who_o show_v himself_o to_o the_o world_n so_o excellent_a and_o admirable_a not_o only_o in_o piety_n &_o learning_n but_o also_o in_o humility_n justice_n charity_n and_o other_o virtue_n worthy_a so_o great_a a_o pastor_n that_o we_o need_v not_o fear_v lest_o such_o a_o bishop_n shall_v be_v so_o stir_v and_o infect_v with_o a_o vain_a opinion_n which_o be_v underprop_a only_o with_o foolery_n and_o snare_n of_o word_n that_o he_o shall_v challenge_v to_o himself_o any_o thing_n which_o of_o due_n belong_v not_o unto_o he_o neither_o have_v bozius_n offer_v so_o rash_a assertion_n to_o so_o great_a a_o bishop_n but_o that_o impudency_n dare_v do_v anything_o it_o be_v time_n ill_o spend_v to_o touch_v several_o upon_o all_o his_o error_n and_o foppery_n only_o lest_o i_o shall_v seem_v for_o my_o own_o pleasure_n only_o to_o have_v find_v fault_n with_o the_o man_n i_o will_v lay_v before_o you_o one_o instance_n of_o his_o foolish_a and_o quirk_a deal_n that_o the_o reader_n may_v judge_v of_o the_o beast_n by_o his_o loose_a chap._n ii_o first_o of_o all_o we_o must_v understand_v that_o those_o two_o power_n whereby_o the_o world_n be_v keep_v in_o order_n i_o mean_v the_o ecclesiastical_a and_o the_o civil_a be_v so_o by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n distinguish_v and_o separate_v that_o although_o they_o be_v both_o 13._o of_o god_n each_o of_o they_o be_v include_v in_o his_o bound_n can_v not_o by_o any_o right_a enter_v upon_o the_o border_n of_o the_o other_o and_o neither_o have_v power_n over_o the_o other_o as_o legit_fw-la s._n bernard_n true_o and_o sweet_o teach_v in_o his_o first_o book_n de_fw-fr consider_n ad_fw-la eugenium_fw-la 6._o and_o among_o the_o late_a divine_n john_n driedo_n 2._o and_o the_o worthy_a hosius_n bishop_n of_o corduba_n write_v to_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n a_o arrian_n do_v evident_o declare_v the_o same_o difference_n of_o
we_o be_v to_o think_v that_o there_o be_v the_o same_o reason_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v establish_v and_o which_o be_v establish_v already_o &_o that_o the_o uine_n ought_v ●●t_n to_o be_v plant_v and_o water_v before_o it_o be_v prune_v but_o that_o then_o that_o power_n be_v give_v to_o the_o church_n when_o that_o of_o the_o prophet_n be_v fulfil_v king_n shall_v be_v thy_o nurse_n &_o with_o a_o countenance_n cast_v to_o the_o earth_n shall_v they_o worship_v thou_o &_o shall_v lick_v the_o dust_n of_o 〈…〉_z 49._o that_o sure_o be_v such_o a_o to●_n as_o i_o do_v think_v not_o worth_a the_o answer_n see_v i_o suppose_v the_o author_n himself_o scarce_o know_v what_o he_o say_v for_o ●hat_n be_v not_o the_o rot_a member_n of_o the_o church_n wont_a to_o be_v cut_v off_o even_o from_o her_o infancy_n &_o first_o beginning_n do_v he_o not_o know_v that_o that_o spiritual_a incision_n which_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o church_n begin_v even_o with_o the_o church_n herself_o what_o say_v you_o to_o ananias_n what_o to_o the_o corinthian_a be_v they_o not_o cut_v off_o by_o the_o church_n if_o he_o know_v not_o this_o he_o be_v to_o be_v think_v a_o ill_a divine_a &_o a_o worse_a vine-dresser_n see_v he_o even_o in_o the_o very_a first_o plant_n shred_n off_o whatsoever_o be_v super_fw-la fluous_a and_o unprofitable_a in_o the_o vine_n and_o suffer_v not_o the_o rot_a and_o faulty_a branch_n to_o stick_v out_o of_o the_o ground_n afterward_o when_o it_o be_v a_o little_a growenup_n he_o lop_v and_o cut_v it_o lest_o it_o shall_v be_v overcharge_v with_o unprofitable_a and_o unfruitful_a stem_n but_o if_o he_o mean_v corporal_a incision_n he_o ought_v to_o know_v that_o the_o church_n have_v no_o skill_n of_o blood_n i_o mean_v that_o she_o do_v not_o execute_v death_n upon_o any_o unless_o peradventure_o it_o fall_v out_o by_o miracle_n as_o in_o the_o person_n of_o ananias_n and_o saph●ra_n 5._o but_o what_o do_v he_o think_v that_o the_o church_n be_v not_o perfect_o establish_v in_o the_o time_n of_o ambrose_n hierome_n and_o austin_n or_o that_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_o plant_v &_o water_v that_o at_o that_o time_n it_o may_v be_v convenient_o shred_v ●an_v sure_o s._n austin_n in_o one_o place_n affirm_v that_o very_o few_o in_o his_o time_n be_v find_v that_o think_v evil_a of_o christ._n why_o then_o do_v the_o church_n tolerate_v ualens_n ualentinianus_fw-la heraclitus_n and_o other_o for_o from_o constantine_n the_o great_a that_o prophecy_n which_o he_o allege_v be_v fulfil_v but_o it_o be_v not_o yet_o time_n to_o cut_v the_o lord_n vineyard_n a_o worthy_a reason_n sure_a and_o to_o be_v rank_v among_o that_o follow_v foolery_n which_o in_o another_o place_n regno_fw-la we_o set_v down_o by_o themselves_o now_o let_v we_o go_v to_o the_o maintainer_n of_o the_o indirect_a power_n chap._n xii_o these_o man_n opinion_n i_o have_v set_v down_o above_o in_o the_o first_o and_o five_o chapter_n which_o be_v that_o the_o pope_n by_o reason_n of_o his_o spiritual_a monarchy_n have_v temporal_a power_n indirect_o and_o that_o sovereign_a to_o dispose_v of_o the_o temporalty_n of_o all_o christian_n and_o that_o he_o may_v change_v kingdom_n and_o take_v they_o from_o one_o to_o give_v they_o to_o another_o if_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o health_n con-tradic●t_a of_o soul_n against_o which_o opinion_n there_o be_v so_o many_o thing_n that_o i_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v utter_o improbable_a if_o not_o incredible_a for_o first_o of_o all_o what_o be_v more_o contrary_a to_o it_o then_o that_o the_o whole_a christian_n antiquity_n ever_o judge_v that_o king_n be_v less_o than_o god_n only_o that_o they_o have_v god_n only_o for_o their_o judge_n that_o they_o be_v subject_a to_o no_o law_n of_o man_n and_o can_v be_v punish_v or_o coerce_v with_o no_o temporal_a punishment_n 〈…〉_z and_o therefore_o that_o which_o the_o author_n of_o the_o law_n say_v princeps_fw-la 〈…〉_z 〈…〉_z est_fw-la that_o the_o grecian_n chief_o understand_v of_o penal_a law_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v the_o prince_n offend_v be_v not_o punish_v none_o of_o these_o thing_n can_v stand_v with_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o adversary_n for_o if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o pope_n may_v dispose_v of_o kingdom_n and_o state_n of_o secular_a prince_n and_o take_v from_o they_o their_o sceptre_n and_o all_o manner_n of_o dignity_n it_o follow_v necessary_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v superior_a and_o even_a judge_n over_o king_n in_o temporal_a matter_n and_o beside_o that_o all_o king_n may_v be_v subject_a to_o temporal_a punishment_n which_o be_v direct_o opposite_a as_o may_v be_v to_o the_o former_a opinion_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n the_o necessity_n of_o the_o consecution_n be_v plain_a by_o this_o for_o that_o he_o who_o judge_v a_o other_o lawful_o must_v of_o necessity_n be_v superior_a over_o he_o who_o he_o judge_v for_o a_o equal_a have_v not_o authority_n over_o a_o equal_a 〈◊〉_d much_o less_o a_o inferior_a over_o a_o superior_a and_o also_o because_o the_o deprivation_n of_o a_o kingdom_n even_o as_o the_o publication_n of_o good_n be_v to_o be_v reckon_v among_o temporal_a punishment_n and_o those_o very_a grievous_a too_o what_o i_o pray_v you_o that_o the_o bishop_n themselves_o confess_v that_o king_n have_v no_o superior_a in_o temporality_n 〈…〉_z they_o have_v and_o they_o have_v not_o can_v be_v both_o true_a therefore_o it_o be_v false_a that_o king_n have_v no_o superior_a in_o temporality_n if_o a_o other_o may_v by_o law_n take_v their_o temporality_n from_o they_o and_o give_v they_o to_o a_o other_o for_o if_o this_o be_v not_o a_o act_n of_o superiority_n as_o i_o may_v speak_v i_o know_v not_o sure_o what_o it_o be_v to_o be_v superior_a or_o if_o to_o condemn_v a_o king_n unheard_a and_o to_o punish_v he_o as_o far_o as_o his_o regal_a dignity_n come_v to_o be_v not_o to_o be_v the_o judge_n of_o a_o king_n we_o must_v confess_v that_o no_o motion_n either_o of_o a_o judgement_n or_o of_o a_o judge_n have_v be_v deliver_v and_o lest_o we_o by_o our_o elder_n for_o in_o that_o they_o place_v the_o difference_n in_o the_o word_n directe_v &_o indirecte_v that_o belong_v not_o to_o the_o power_n of_o judge_v and_o to_o the_o effect_n of_o the_o judgement_n but_o only_o to_o the_o manner_n and_o way_n of_o acquire_v so_o great_a a_o power_n for_o the_o canonist_n do_v say_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v receive_v direct_o of_o christ_n the_o temporal_a dominion_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n but_o these_o man_n i_o mean_v the_o divine_n deem_v that_o he_o receive_v such_o a_o dominion_n direct_o as_o if_o you_o shall_v say_v by_o itself_o simple_o and_o without_o consideration_n of_o another_o thing_n but_o only_o indirect_o that_o be_v by_o consequence_n in_o regard_n of_o that_o spiritual_a power_n which_o he_o have_v receive_v direct_o from_o the_o lord_n therefore_o this_o difference_n out_o of_o these_o word_n ought_v to_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o beginning_n and_o mean_v of_o acquire_v a_o temporal_a power_n but_o not_o to_o the_o force_n and_o effect_n of_o the_o same_o for_o whether_o you_o say_v make_v nothing_o for_o the_o strength_n and_o power_n of_o the_o pope_n judgement_n over_o king_n unless_o peradventure_o some_o may_v say_v that_o the_o pope_n if_o he_o be_v a_o ill_a man_n may_v tyrannize_v over_o the_o parson_n and_o estate_n of_o king_n more_o free_o indirect_o then_o direct_o but_o if_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o adversary_n shall_v take_v place_n christian_a king_n and_o prince_n shall_v not_o only_o be_v client_n and_o vassal_n to_o the_o pope_n in_o temporality_n but_o that_o which_o be_v more_o base_a they_o shall_v hold_v their_o kingdom_n and_o principality_n as_o it_o be_v at_o his_o courtesy_n and_o this_o i_o do_v easy_o prove_v even_o out_o of_o the_o very_a principle_n and_o ground_n of_o the_o adversary_n the_o pope_n may_v take_v from_o any_o man_n his_o kingdom_n and_o give_v it_o to_o another_o if_o so_o be_v that_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o health_n of_o soul_n but_o to_o judge_v and_o determine_v if_o it_o be_v necessary_a belong_v to_o the_o same_o pope_n of_o who_o judgement_n whether_o it_o be_v right_a or_o wrong_n none_o can_v judge_v 3._o therefore_o where_o he_o list_v he_o may_v deprive_v every_o man_n of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o give_v it_o to_o another_o the_o proposition_n in_o this_o argument_n be_v the_o very_a opinion_n of_o the_o adversary_n and_o the_o assumption_n be_v without_o controversy_n among_o all_o catholic_n for_o none_o but_o a_o heretic_n will_v deny_v that_o the_o charge_n of_o soul_n belong_v to_o the_o successor_n of_o peter_n and_o vicar_n of_o christ._n last_o the_o conclusion_n follow_v necessary_o of_o the_o
which_o belong_v to_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n and_o the_o priestly_a function_n but_o for_o that_o bellarmine_n will_v fain_o have_v it_o 29._o that_o solomon_n do_v this_o not_o as_o a_o king_n but_o as_o a_o prophet_n and_o a_o executioner_n of_o divine_a justice_n i_o require_v some_o proof_n of_o this_o interpretation_n see_v it_o appear_v no_o where_o by_o the_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o rest_v upon_o mere_a conjecture_n only_o for_o in_o that_o place_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v neither_o of_o any_o commandment_n special_o give_v by_o the_o lord_n nor_o of_o any_o extraordinary_a power_n delegated_a unto_o he_o but_o rather_o the_o clean_a contrary_n solomon_n himself_o declare_v open_o enough_o that_o he_o execute_v this_o judgement_n as_o king_n according_a to_o the_o ordinary_a power_n of_o the_o government_n which_o he_o en●o●ed_v in_o the_o right_n of_o his_o kingdom_n by_o use_v this_o preface_n the_o lord_n live_v who_o have_v establish_v i_o and_o placea_n i_o upon_o the_o throne_n of_o david_n my_o father_n and_o indeed_o the_o whole_a business_n be_v not_o spiritual_a or_o ecclesiastike_a but_o temporal_a and_o politic_a only_o wherein_o solomon_n know_v very_o well_o that_o the_o king_n as_o king_n be_v the_o lawful_a and_o ordinary_a judge_n and_o therefore_o we_o do_v not_o read_v that_o by_o one_o interest_n he_o give_v judgement_n upon_o adoniah_n and_o by_o a_o other_o upon_o abiathar_n again_o where_o bellarmine_n to_o strengthen_v his_o interpretation_n take_v hold_v of_o those_o word_n utim●leatur_fw-la sermo_fw-la domini_fw-la etc._n etc._n it_o be_v very_a sleight_n i_o will_v not_o say_v absurd_a for_o what_o belong_v this_o to_o the_o manner_n of_o fulfil_v who_o know_v not_o that_o the_o same_o speech_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v as_o well_o verify_v of_o that_o which_o be_v perform_v after_o a_o usual_a law_n and_o a_o ordinary_a authority_n as_o in_o this_o place_n as_o of_o that_o which_o be_v fulfil_v either_o extraordinary_o by_o some_o wonderful_a event_n or_o by_o the_o impiety_n and_o tyranny_n of_o man_n the_o wicked_a when_o they_o crucify_v our_o saviour_n 〈…〉_z divide_v his_o garment_n that_o it_o may_v be_v fulfil_v which_o be_v speak_v by_o the_o prophet_n or_o that_o the_o scripture_n may_v be_v fulfil_v 〈…〉_z therefore_o such_o kind_n of_o word_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v add_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o show_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o prediction_n and_o prophecy_n so_o as_o to_o draw_v a_o argument_n from_o hence_o to_o gather_v a_o other_o matter_n must_v seem_v very_o ridiculous_a and_o childish_a indeed_o solomon_n in_o that_o case_n be_v the_o executer_n of_o the_o divine_a justice_n i_o allow_v it_o he_o be_v a_o prophet_n also_o it_o be_v true_a and_o what_o then_o and_o yet_o we_o read_v that_o he_o do_v that_o by_o his_o kingly_a authority_n and_o common_a or_o ordinary_a power_n and_o none_o not_o the_o least_o mention_n make_v of_o any_o special_a commandment_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o place_n in_o scripture_n where_o we_o may_v read_v that_o this_o jurisdiction_n be_v by_o special_a name_n commit_v to_o he_o moreover_o it_o be_v not_o likely_a that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o story_n be_v inspire_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v without_o any_o touch_n or_o warning_n pass_v over_o so_o different_a cause_n of_o so_o great_a a_o business_n and_o of_o so_o great_a weight_n if_o so_o be_v the_o king_n have_v pass_v his_o judgement_n by_o virtue_n of_o one_o power_n and_o authority_n against_o adoniah_n be_v a_o lie_v person_n and_o another_o against_o abiathar_n a_o priest_n in_o like_a sort_n the_o same_o learned_a man_n be_v deceive_v when_o he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n if_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n the_o sovereign_a cap._n power_n be_v temporal_a in_o the_o new_a spiritual_a because_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n the_o promise_n be_v only_o temporal_a and_o in_o the_o new_a spiritual_a and_o eternal_a for_o neither_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v the_o sovereign_a power_n altogether_o temporal_a neither_o be_v spiritual_a in_o the_o new_a but_o each_o in_o his_o own_o kingdom_n that_o be_v in_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o his_o own_o power_n as_o be_v most_o meet_a do_v then_o bear_v sway_n and_o at_o this_o time_n rule_v even_o then_o say_v i_o both_o of_o they_o content_v with_o their_o own_o precinct_n abstain_v from_o that_o which_o be_v not_o their_o own_o that_o neither_o the_o temporal_a power_n invade_v the_o spiritual_a jurisdiction_n and_o priestly_a function_n nor_o the_o spiritual_a press_v upon_o the_o temporal_a as_o in_o their_o own_o right_n now_o that_o right_n which_o solomon_n do_v show_v at_o that_o time_n to_o belong_v to_o prince_n temporal_a over_o the_o clergy_n be_v acknowledge_v and_o retain_v by_o king_n in_o the_o new_a law_n and_o in_o the_o christian_n common_a wealth_n from_o hence_o come_v those_o privilege_n which_o diverse_a prince_n excel_v in_o devotion_n and_o piety_n grant_v to_o ecclesiastike_a person_n eccles_n for_o to_o what_o end_n be_v privilege_n give_v to_o they_o if_o by_o a_o common_a right_n they_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o king_n see_v that_o they_o who_o be_v defend_v and_o exempt_v by_o the_o common_a aid_n and_o by_o mere_a law_n have_v no_o need_n of_o any_o privilege_n or_o extraordinary_a help_n princi_fw-la and_o with_o these_o agree_v even_o those_o thing_n which_o bellarmine_n himself_o do_v most_o right_o 〈◊〉_d against_o the_o canonist_n that_o the_o exemption_n of_o the_o clergy_n in_o civil_a cause_n as_o well_o touch_v their_o person_n as_o touch_v their_o good_n be_v bring_v in_o by_o the_o law_n of_o man_n and_o not_o of_o god_n and_o he_o confirm_v it_o both_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o that_o same_o rule_n so_o much_o celebrate_v let_v every_o soul_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o high_a power_n as_o well_o include_v the_o clerike_v as_o the_o laikes_n by_o chrysostom_n testimony_n and_o also_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o last_o in_o that_o as_o he_o say_v no_o word_n of_o god_n can_v be_v bring_v forth_o whereby_o this_o exemption_n can_v be_v confirm_v and_o i_o add_v this_o as_o a_o most_o pregnant_a argument_n of_o this_o truth_n that_o in_o the_o most_o flourish_a estate_n of_o the_o church_n and_o under_o those_o prince_n who_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n the_o pastor_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v enact_v and_o observe_v by_o the_o imperial_a law_n that_o the_o clergy_n shall_v answer_v before_o secular_a judge_n touch_v civil_a crime_n and_o be_v condemn_v by_o they_o if_o they_o be_v find_v guilty_a of_o the_o crime_n lay_v against_o they_o 6._o and_o indeed_o lest_o we_o mistake_v we_o must_v understand_v that_o not_o all_o these_o privilege_n of_o person_n and_o business_n which_o at_o this_o day_n the_o clergy_n enjoy_v be_v grant_v by_o the_o same_o prince_n nor_o at_o the_o same_o time_n for_o first_o constantinus_n magnus_n endow_v they_o with_o this_o singular_a privilege_n only_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v obnoxious_a to_o nomination_n and_o susception_n that_o be_v that_o be_v nominate_v or_o elect_v they_o shall_v not_o be_v constrain_v to_o bear_v office_n or_o to_o undertake_v any_o wardship_n or_o to_o take_v any_o office_n which_o concern_v the_o collection_n or_o receipt_n of_o victual_v or_o tribute_n whereas_o before_o they_o be_v call_v to_o all_o these_o thing_n without_o exception_n as_o well_o as_o any_o other_o citizen_n in_o the_o eight_o year_n after_o by_o the_o same_o prince_n his_o favour_n they_o obtain_v immunity_n and_o excuse_n from_o all_o civil_a function_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o same_o emperor_n 16._o wherein_o he_o give_v this_o reason_n of_o his_o privilege_n lest_o the_o clergy_n by_o the_o sacrilegious_a malice_n of_o certain_a man_n may_v be_v call_v away_o from_o divine_a service_n and_o sure_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n worth_a the_o mark_v against_o the_o unthankful_a rashness_n of_o certain_a clerike_n who_o can_v endure_v to_o ascribe_v the_o beginning_n of_o their_o immunity_n to_o the_o courtesy_n and_o gift_n of_o secular_a prince_n because_o the_o same_o godly_a prince_n do_v term_v those_o exemption_n privilege_n for_o thus_o he_o by_o the_o faction_n of_o heretical_a person_n we_o find_v that_o the_o clerike_v of_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v so_o vex_v that_o they_o be_v oppress_v with_o certain_a nomination_n or_o susception_n which_o the_o common_a custom_n require_v against_o the_o privilege_n grant_v to_o they_o afterward_o constantius_n and_o constance_n about_o the_o year_n thirty_o six_o from_o the_o grant_n of_o the_o first_o privilege_n arbitio_n and_o lollianus_n be_v consul_n grant_v a_o other_o privilege_n to_o the_o bishop_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v accuse_v of_o any_o crime_n
subject_n to_o his_o sect_n if_o a_o marry_a person_n believe_v be_v not_o free_a from_o the_o yoke_n of_o the_o other_o mate_n unbelieved_a although_o he_o will_v not_o continue_v with_o the_o believe_a yoke-fellow_n without_o inturie_n to_o the_o faith_n and_o contumely_n to_o the_o creator_n as_o innocentius_n iii_o open_o teach_v in_o cap._n quanto_fw-la §_o sivero_fw-la de_fw-fr divort_fw-la &_o in_o cap._n ex_fw-la parte_fw-la de_fw-fr conver_n coniugat_fw-la adeo_fw-la ut_fw-la panorm_a in_o illum_fw-la §_o si_fw-mi verò_fw-la do_v say_v out_o of_o the_o reason_n there_o lay_v that_o the_o church_n can_v dissolve_v such_o a_o marriage_n and_o free_a the_o believe_a yoke-fellow_n from_o the_o yoke_n of_o the_o unbelieved_a when_o as_o notwithstanding_o a_o believe_a yoke-mate_n may_v much_o more_o easy_o be_v pervert_v by_o a_o yoke-mate_n unbelieved_a than_o the_o whole_a people_n by_o a_o king_n but_o the_o bond_n of_o the_o subjection_n whereby_o the_o people_n be_v tie_v to_o the_o king_n since_o it_o proceed_v both_o from_o natural_a and_o divine_a law_n seem_v much_o more_o hard_a to_o be_v dissolve_v then_o that_o of_o marry_a person_n between_o themselves_o that_o from_o thence_o a_o man_n may_v easy_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n can_v do_v no_o more_o in_o one_o then_o in_o the_o other_o but_o if_o he_o understand_v his_o argument_n of_o the_o late_a marry_v person_n the_o answer_n be_v easy_a out_o of_o the_o same_o decretal_a epistle_n of_o innocent_a to_o wit_n that_o between_o such_o couple_n the_o marriage_n be_v not_o good_a as_o much_o as_o appertain_v to_o the_o indissoluble_a 12._o bond_n of_o matrimony_n and_o therefore_o such_o kind_n of_o marry_a parson_n have_v full_a liberty_n to_o dissolve_v the_o matrimony_n that_o they_o may_v depart_v either_o with_o consent_n and_o good_a like_v or_o with_o mislike_n and_o displeasure_n and_o the_o one_o of_o they_o even_o against_o the_o like_n of_o the_o other_o may_v by_o refusal_n and_o divorce_n at_o his_o pleasure_n dissolve_v that_o knot_n of_o marriage_n for_o the_o woman_n may_v as_o well_o send_v letter_n of_o divorce_n to_o the_o man_n as_o the_o man_n to_o the_o wife_n for_o say_v he_o although_o the_o matrimony_n among_o infidel_n be_v true_a because_o they_o go_v together_o according_a to_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o law_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o firm_a but_o among_o the_o believer_n it_o be_v both_o true_a and_o firm_a because_o the_o sacrament_n of_o faith_n be_v once_o admit_v be_v never_o lose_v but_o make_v firm_a the_o sacrament_n of_o marriage_n that_o it_o continue_v in_o the_o marry_a person_n while_o that_o continue_v it_o be_v no_o wonder_n then_o if_o the_o marry_a person_n bring_v to_o the_o faith_n be_v free_a from_o the_o fellowship_n and_o power_n of_o his_o fellow_n remain_v in_o infidelity_n when_o as_o although_o both_o have_v continue_v in_o infidelity_n it_o have_v be_v even_o as_o free_v for_o each_o of_o they_o to_o depart_v from_o the_o other_o &_o by_o divorce_n to_o dissolve_v marriage_n because_o in_o the_o begin_n there_o pass_v no_o form_n and_o rate_n bond_n of_o obligation_n between_o they_o and_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o command_v but_o advice_n that_o the_o believe_a wife_n shall_v not_o depart_v from_o the_o unbelieve_a husband_n if_o he_o be_v willing_a to_o stay_v with_o she_o as_o s._n augustine_n teach_v learned_o and_o eloquent_o lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr adulterinis_fw-la coni●giis_fw-la and_o the_o holy_a canon_n take_v from_o thence_o do_v admonish_v we_o 9_o which_o matter_n since_o they_o stand_v thus_o sure_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o adversary_n do_v to_o small_a purpose_n fetch_v a_o argument_n from_o marry_a person_n to_o show_v that_o people_n may_v be_v free_v from_o the_o regal_a yoke_n whether_o they_o regard_v the_o marriage_n of_o the_o believer_n or_o of_o the_o unbeliever_n because_o they_o be_v couple_v with_o a_o most_o straight_o and_o indissoluble_a knot_n of_o society_n who_o band_n can_v be_v break_v no_o not_o by_o the_o church_n itself_o neither_o for_o infidelity_n nor_o heresy_n of_o the_o one_o part_n so_o as_o from_o hence_o he_o do_v furnish_v we_o with_o a_o argument_n tend_v rather_o to_o maintain_v the_o strength_n and_o perpetuity_n of_o regal_a authority_n then_o to_o dissolve_v and_o destroy_v the_o same_o and_o these_o be_v tie_v by_o no_o necessity_n of_o obligation_n in_o the_o face_n of_o the_o church_n but_o the_o husband_n convert_v to_o the_o faith_n if_o his_o fellow_n will_v not_o follow_v without_o scandal_n may_v at_o his_o pleasure_n take_v to_o he_o another_o and_o again_o the_o woman_n bring_v to_o the_o faith_n if_o the_o husband_n refuse_v may_v in_o christ_n marry_v with_o who_o she_o will_n seeing_n therefore_o there_o be_v no_o firm_a marriage_n between_o these_o and_o the_o politic_a subjection_n and_o kingly_a domination_n and_o rule_n be_v ratify_v and_o approve_v among_o all_o nation_n and_o in_o every_o law_n as_o well_o by_o divine_a as_o humane_a power_n what_o can_v be_v more_o unreasonable_a or_o fond_a then_o to_o compare_v and_o suit_v they_o together_o and_o to_o deduce_v any_o argument_n from_o the_o society_n and_o yoke_n of_o unbelieved_a marry_a person_n which_o may_v be_v shake_v of_o at_o pleasure_n to_o break_v the_o yoke_n of_o regal_a power_n and_o authority_n and_o to_o make_v the_o same_o judgement_n of_o they_o both_o as_o if_o they_o be_v as_o like_a as_o may_v be_v chap._n xxiv_o i_o tell_v you_o in_o the_o twenty-three_o chapter_n that_o there_o be_v five_o reason_n in_o bellarmine_n whereby_o he_o will_v prove_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v temporal_a power_n over_o all_o secular_a king_n and_o prince_n christian_a of_o which_o reason_n we_o have_v run_v through_o three_o and_o observe_v how_o weak_a they_o be_v and_o of_o what_o disease_n they_o labour_v it_o remain_v now_o that_o we_o make_v our_o survey_n of_o the_o other_o two_o which_o be_v not_o a_o whit_n better_o condition_v the_o first_o whereof_o be_v by_o he_o lay_v down_o in_o these_o word_n when_o king_n and_o prince_n come_v to_o the_o church_n to_o be_v make_v christian_n they_o be_v receive_v with_o a_o covenant_n either_o express_a or_o secret_a that_o they_o shall_v subject_v their_o sceptre_n to_o christ_n and_o promise_v that_o they_o will_v observe_v and_o defend_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n yea_o under_o the_o penalty_n of_o lose_v their_o kingdom_n ergo._fw-la when_o they_o prove_v heretic_n or_o hurt_v religion_n they_o may_v be_v judge_v by_o the_o church_n and_o withal_o be_v depose_v from_o their_o government_n neither_o shall_v any_o injury_n be_v do_v they_o if_o they_o be_v depose_v i_o answer_v this_o reason_n by_o deny_v the_o consequent_a for_o although_o it_o be_v true_a that_o prince_n come_v to_o the_o church_n do_v submit_v themselves_o and_o their_o sceptre_n to_o christ_n and_o even_o of_o their_o own_o accord_n do_v make_v those_o promise_v either_o secret_o or_o express_o which_o bellarmine_n report_v yet_o it_o be_v not_o true_a neither_o do_v it_o follow_v thereof_o that_o they_o may_v be_v judge_v and_o depose_v by_o the_o church_n or_o pope_n if_o they_o break_v their_o promise_n or_o neglect_v to_o keep_v their_o covenant_n and_o oath_n because_o that_o sovereign_a jurisdiction_n and_o temporal_a power_n of_o christ_n over_o all_o king_n and_o the_o whole_a world_n which_o he_o have_v as_o the_o son_n of_o god_n do_v not_o appertain_v to_o the_o church_n or_o pope_n but_o that_o power_n only_o which_o christ_n assume_v to_o himself_o when_o he_o be_v conversant_a among_o man_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o man_n according_a to_o which_o the_o pope_n be_v christ_n vicar_n whereupon_o bellarmine_n himself_o write_v 4._o excellent_o well_o we_o say_v quoth_v he_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v that_o office_n which_o christ_n have_v when_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o man_n he_o live_v among_o man_n in_o the_o world_n for_o we_o may_v not_o give_v the_o pope_n those_o office_n which_o christ_n have_v as_o god_n or_o as_o animmortall_a and_o glorious_a man_n but_o only_o those_o which_o he_o have_v as_o a_o mortal_a man_n but_o christ_n usurp_v no_o temporal_a dominion_n and_o power_n when_o he_o live_v as_o a_o man_n among_o man_n in_o earth_n and_o therefore_o neither_o the_o church_n as_o the_o church_n nor_o the_o pope_n as_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o vicar_n of_o christ_n can_v have_v any_o temporal_a power_n as_o the_o same_o learned_a man_n declare_v and_o prove_v at_o large_a in_o that_o chapter_n wherefore_o although_o king_n and_o prince_n when_o they_o come_v to_o the_o church_n do_v subject_a their_o kingdom_n to_o the_o lord_n christ_n and_o have_v christ_n their_o judge_n from_o who_o they_o have_v also_o their_o kingdom_n but_o because_o the_o judgement_n be_v of_o a_o temporal_a affair_n when_o the_o business_n be_v touch_v
first_o of_o all_o the_o pope_n that_o ever_o adventure_v this_o high_a course_n we_o have_v sufficient_o declare_v before_o but_o who_o be_v ignorant_a how_o that_o same_o furious_a aggression_n and_o censure_n of_o boniface_n the_o viii_o upon_o philip_n the_o fair_a how_o little_a it_o profit_v nay_o how_o much_o it_o hurt_v the_o church_n likewise_o that_o of_o julius_n the_o ii_o against_o lewes_n the_o xii_o both_o king_n of_o france_n of_o clement_n the_o vii_o and_o paulus_n the_o iii_o against_o henry_n the_o viii_o and_o of_o pius_fw-la quintus_fw-la against_o elizabeth_n king_n of_o england_n do_v not_o all_o these_o prince_n not_o only_o not_o acknowledge_v but_o also_o contemn_v and_o laugh_v to_o scorn_v that_o same_o papal_a imperiousness_n carry_v beyond_o the_o bound_n of_o a_o spiritual_a jurisdiction_n as_o mere_a arrogation_n and_o a_o usurp_a domination_n for_o the_o two_o last_o pope_n i_o dare_v be_v bold_a to_o affirm_v upon_o a_o clear_a ground_n for_o the_o matter_n be_v know_v to_o all_o the_o world_n that_o they_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o religion_n be_v lose_v in_o england_n for_o that_o they_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o usurp_v and_o practice_v so_o odious_a and_o so_o large_a a_o jurisdiction_n over_o the_o prince_n and_o people_n of_o that_o kingdom_n therefore_o how_o much_o more_o just_o and_o wise_o do_v clement_n the_o viii_o who_o choose_v rather_o by_o a_o spiritual_a and_o fatherly_a charity_n and_o a_o virtue_n agreeable_a to_o his_o name_n to_o erect_v and_o establish_v the_o state_n of_o the_o french_a kingdom_n which_o begin_v to_o stagger_v and_o sway_v in_o religion_n then_o to_o contend_v by_o this_o same_o haughty_a and_o threaten_a authority_n of_o a_o temporal_a jurisdiction_n because_o he_o know_v that_o seldom_o or_o never_o it_o have_v happy_a issue_n out_o of_o doubt_n for_o king_n and_o prince_n who_o glory_v not_o without_o cause_n that_o they_o be_v behold_v only_o to_o god_n &_o the_o sword_n for_o their_o kingdom_n and_o principality_n it_o be_v proper_a to_o they_o of_o a_o natural_a greatness_n of_o mind_n to_o desire_v rather_o to_o die_v with_o honour_n then_o to_o submit_v their_o sceptre_n to_o a_o other_o authority_n and_o to_o acknowledge_v any_o judge_n &_o superior_a in_o temporal_a matter_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n it_o seem_v not_o to_o be_v good_a for_o the_o church_n and_o christian_a commonwealth_n that_o the_o pope_n shall_v be_v invest_v in_o so_o great_a a_o authority_n over_o secular_a prince_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o manifold_a slaughter_n misery_n and_o lamentable_a change_n of_o religion_n and_o of_o all_o thing_n beside_o which_o dospr_v from_o thence_o in_o which_o consideration_n i_o can_v but_o wonder_v at_o the_o weak_a judgement_n of_o some_o man_n who_o take_v themselves_o to_o be_v very_o wise_a who_o to_o remove_v from_o the_o pope_n the_o envy_n of_o so_o hateful_a a_o power_n and_o to_o mitigate_v &_o allay_v the_o indignation_n of_o king_n who_o it_o offen_n death_n so_o much_o be_v not_o afraid_a to_o give_v out_o and_o to_o publish_v in_o book_n scatter_v abroad_o arnauld_n that_o this_o temporal_a prerogative_n of_o the_o pope_n over_o king_n be_v pass_v profitable_a even_o for_o the_o king_n themselves_o because_o as_o they_o say_v man_n sometime_o be_v keep_v in_o compass_n more_o through_o the_o fear_n of_o lose_v temporal_a then_o of_o spiritual_a estate_n a_o excellent_a reason_n sure_o and_o worthy_a of_o they_o who_o put_v no_o difference_n between_o prince_n and_o private_a person_n and_o measure_n all_o with_o one_o foot_n sure_o these_o man_n reach_v so_o far_o in_o understanding_n that_o they_o understand_v nothing_o at_o all_o as_o though_o that_o fear_n which_o fall_v upon_o private_a person_n be_v wont_a to_o possess_v also_o the_o mind_n of_o prince_n who_o hold_v themselves_o sufficient_o protect_v and_o arm_v with_o the_o only_a authority_n of_o their_o government_n against_o all_o power_n and_o strength_n and_o impression_n of_o any_o man_n that_o reason_n ought_v only_o to_o be_v refer_v to_o they_o who_o the_o terror_n of_o temporal_a authority_n and_o the_o severity_n of_o ordinary_a jurisdiction_n do_v reclaim_v from_o offend_v with_o fear_n of_o punishment_n for_o these_o kind_n of_o people_n because_o they_o be_v sure_a that_o if_o they_o offend_v they_o shall_v be_v chastise_v with_o some_o pecuniary_a or_o corporal_a mult_fw-la do_v for_o the_o most_o part_n abstain_v from_o do_v hurt_v not_o for_o conscience_n but_o for_o the_o displeasure_n and_o fear_v of_o the_o loss_n of_o temporal_a thing_n but_o king_n have_v not_o the_o same_o reason_n but_o be_v place_v on_o high_a above_o all_o humane_a constitution_n and_o all_o positive_a law_n do_v give_v unto_o god_n only_o the_o account_n of_o their_o administration_n who_o punishment_n the_o long_o it_o be_v in_o come_v the_o more_o severe_a it_o be_v like_a to_o be_v against_o private_a person_n the_o execution_n of_o punishment_n be_v ready_a which_o they_o can_v avoid_v without_o the_o mercy_n of_o the_o prince_n but_o what_o execution_n can_v be_v do_v against_o prince_n see_v they_o be_v not_o tie_v by_o any_o sanction_n of_o humane_a law_n nullisque_fw-la ad_fw-la poenam_fw-la vocentur_fw-la legibus_fw-la tuti_fw-la imperij_fw-la poteslate_v for_o that_o it_o be_v express_v in_o the_o law_n that_o the_o prince_n be_v free_a from_o the_o law_n that_o both_o the_o latin_a and_o the_o greek_a interpreter_n do_v understand_v as_o of_o all_o law_n so_o especial_o of_o poenall_n that_o the_o prince_n although_o he_o do_v offend_v may_v not_o be_v chastise_v by_o they_o or_o as_o the_o grecian_n do_v speak_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o king_n be_v assure_v both_o the_o greatness_n of_o their_o authority_n and_o confidence_n of_o their_o arm_n fear_v not_o the_o loss_n of_o any_o temporal_a estate_n see_v there_o be_v not_o one_o among_o a_o thousand_o of_o they_o so_o froward_a and_o friendless_a but_o that_o he_o can_v find_v many_o friend_n to_o follow_v his_o party_n by_o who_o help_n and_o advice_n whether_o he_o be_v to_o use_v sleight_n or_o strength_n he_o suppose_v he_o can_v maintain_v his_o crown_n and_o sceptre_n and_o for_o this_o very_a reason_n it_o be_v so_o far_o that_o they_o will_v be_v terrify_v with_o these_o imperious_a and_o lord_v minitation_n to_o take_v their_o kingdom_n away_o that_o they_o be_v rather_o inflame_v and_o set_v on_o fire_n by_o they_o against_o all_o piety_n and_o religion_n and_o it_o be_v very_o certain_a that_o this_o temporal_a power_n which_o the_o pope_n some_o age_n past_a do_v challenge_v over_o all_o man_n be_v so_o hateful_a to_o prince_n that_o even_o they_o who_o do_v much_o honour_n the_o seat_n of_o peter_n and_o do_v acknowledge_v the_o great_a power_n of_o his_o successor_n in_o spiritual_a cause_n yet_o they_o can_v without_o indignation_n endure_v to_o hear_v the_o speech_n of_o this_o temporal_a domination_n the_o reason_n be_v because_o neither_o in_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n nor_o tradition_n of_o apostle_n or_o any_o write_n of_o ancient_a father_n there_o appear_v any_o testimony_n nay_o no_o token_n or_o print_n of_o foot_n of_o any_o such_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o a_o matter_n of_o so_o great_a weight_n i_o mean_v so_o great_a a_o command_n and_o power_n of_o reign_v shall_v be_v evict_v or_o wrest_v from_o they_o without_o the_o manifest_a word_n of_o god_n or_o pregnant_a proof_n of_o reason_n neither_o can_v they_o endure_v any_o reason_n of_o law_n or_o indifferency_n of_o equity_n can_v admit_v wherefore_o wise_a man_n have_v ever_o be_v of_o this_o mind_n that_o the_o pope_n shall_v with_o much_o more_o case_n procure_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n if_o according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o their_o ancestor_n they_o will_v quiet_o rest_v themselves_o within_o the_o bound_n and_o compass_n of_o the_o spiritual_a jurisdiction_n and_o that_o according_a to_o their_o apostolic_a charity_n they_o shall_v humble_o entreat_v wicked_a king_n request_v beseech_v protest_v with_o prayer_n and_o tear_n that_o they_o will_v return_v into_o the_o way_n rather_o than_o that_o they_o shall_v go_v about_o through_o this_o hateful_a intermination_n to_o strip_v they_o of_o their_o temporal_a authority_n as_o it_o be_v through_o force_n and_o fear_n whereby_o they_o profit_v nothing_o or_o little_a to_o extort_v and_o wrest_v from_o they_o amendment_n of_o manner_n and_o faith_n and_o if_o these_o prince_n be_v so_o obstinate_a and_o stiff_a in_o their_o wicked_a course_n that_o they_o can_v be_v move_v with_o no_o tear_n nor_o bend_a with_o no_o prayer_n the_o assistance_n of_o god_n must_v be_v implore_v and_o they_o abandon_v to_o his_o judgement_n but_o now_o let_v we_o go_v forward_o chap._n xxxii_o the_o second_o argument_n which_o bellarmine_n deduct_v out_o of_o his_o five_o
in_o certain_a place_n therefore_o we_o grant_v the_o whole_a argument_n and_o free_o confess_v and_o profess_v that_o the_o pope_n by_o his_o spiritual_a authority_n may_v command_v all_o prince_n and_o enjoin_v they_o to_o do_v those_o thing_n which_o appertain_v to_o their_o safety_n and_o they_o and_o unless_o they_o do_v it_o also_o to_o enforce_v by_o excommunication_n and_o other_o convenient_a mean_n but_o the_o convenient_a mean_n be_v all_o spiritual_a mean_n and_o not_o temporal_a unless_o they_o be_v practise_v by_o a_o temporal_a magistrate_n the_o which_o point_n john_n driedo_n observe_v in_o his_o book_n of_o christian_a liberty_n after_o that_o he_o have_v declare_v that_o these_o two_o authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n be_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n distinct_a in_o the_o church_n and_o that_o all_o secular_a authority_n in_o spiritual_a matter_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o pope_n authority_n so_o as_o the_o pope_n in_o regard_n of_o his_o pastoral_a charge_n have_v authority_n over_o a_o christian_a emperor_n even_o as_o a_o spiritual_a father_n over_o a_o son_n and_o as_o a_o shepherd_n over_o his_o sheep_n that_o he_o may_v judge_v and_o correct_v he_o if_o he_o shall_v fall_v into_o heresy_n or_o deny_v public_a justice_n to_o the_o poor_a and_o oppress_v or_o shall_v enact_v law_n to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n all_o which_o thing_n we_o also_o affirm_v he_o set_v down_o no_o other_o pain_n or_o punishment_n against_o emperor_n so_o offend_v but_o excommunication_n alone_o because_o he_o know_v that_o the_o pope_n authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n be_v content_a with_o spiritual_a punishment_n and_o can_v go_v no_o further_o unless_o she_o will_v run_v out_o in_o the_o border_n of_o temporal_a authority_n and_o invade_v a_o foreign_a jurisdiction_n which_o by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n be_v distinct_a and_o separate_a from_o he_o now_o this_o be_v no_o convenient_a mean_a which_o the_o adversary_n use_n of_o depose_v ill_a prince_n from_o their_o government_n but_o rather_o of_o all_o other_o mean_v inconvenient_a both_o for_o that_o it_o have_v scarce_o ever_o succeed_v happy_o to_o the_o pope_n themselves_o or_o the_o church_n but_o be_v accustom_v to_o bring_v into_o the_o church_n and_o christian_n common_a wealth_n infinite_a calamity_n by_o intestine_a discord_n schism_n and_o civil_a war_n as_o also_o because_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o pope_n to_o who_o spiritual_a matter_n only_o be_v commit_v such_o a_o mean_a must_v needs_o seem_v very_o strange_a and_o to_o proceed_v from_o a_o usurp_a authority_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v to_o be_v judge_v dereiudic_n neither_o convenient_a nor_o just_a nor_o possible_a hitherto_o have_v i_o weigh_v in_o the_o balance_n of_o naked_a and_o open_a truth_n according_a to_o the_o slenderness_n of_o my_o wit_n all_o the_o reason_n and_o from_o those_o reason_n the_o argument_n whereby_o bellarmine_n endeavour_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v supreme_a authority_n over_o secular_a prince_n indirecte_v indirect_o chap._n xxxv_o i_o think_v in_o the_o beginning_n when_o i_o begin_v this_o work_n that_o it_o be_v sufficient_a diligent_o to_o examine_v and_o discuss_v the_o reason_n which_o this_o learned_a man_n bellarmine_n do_v use_v but_o for_o that_o he_o send_v we_o to_o other_o matter_n which_o he_o say_v be_v extant_a in_o nicolas_n sanders_n save_v see_v more_o in_o nicolas_n sanders_n lib._n 2._o cap_n 4._o de_fw-fr visibili_fw-la monarchia_fw-la where_o you_o shall_v find_v many_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o i_o have_v deliver_v i_o think_v i_o shall_v not_o do_v amiss_o if_o i_o shall_v bring_v into_o light_n those_o argument_n of_o sander_n which_o be_v behind_o lest_o the_o curious_a and_o observant_a of_o our_o write_n shall_v complain_v that_o any_o reason_n of_o the_o contrary_a side_n have_v be_v omit_v and_o also_o shall_v imagine_v that_o it_o be_v of_o purpose_n omit_v because_o it_o be_v so_o strong_a that_o it_o can_v be_v answer_v all_o the_o world_n do_v know_v especial_o they_o who_o have_v with_o any_o care_n and_o attention_n peruse_v sanders_n his_o book_n that_o he_o spare_v no_o pain_n and_o above_o all_o other_o man_n gather_v together_o most_o argument_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v invest_v in_o this_o temporal_a authority_n over_o all_o christian_n whereof_o we_o speak_v but_o yet_o it_o be_v very_o likely_a that_o that_o man_n be_v so_o far_o blind_v either_o with_o a_o bitter_a hatred_n which_o he_o bear_v against_o queen_n elizabeth_n be_v banish_v out_o of_o her_o kingdom_n or_o with_o too_o great_a affection_n towards_o pope_n pius_n v._o to_o who_o he_o be_v many_o way_n bind_v or_o else_o with_o some_o other_o i_o know_v not_o what_o smoke_n of_o humour_n and_o passion_n that_o he_o do_v not_o see_v how_o that_o for_o certain_a and_o sound_a argument_n he_o use_v many_o show_n which_o be_v not_o only_o false_a and_o far_o fetch_v but_o even_o dissent_v from_o common_a sense_n and_o the_o judgement_n of_o natural_a reason_n therefore_o will_v i_o transcribe_v into_o this_o place_n very_o compendious_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o argument_n which_o as_o i_o think_v be_v of_o purpose_n omit_v by_o bellarmine_n argument_n 1_o therefore_o he_o deduce_v one_o from_o this_o that_o saul_n kingdom_n be_v take_v from_o he_o for_o that_o he_o have_v not_o observe_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o be_v deliver_v he_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o samuel_n from_o whence_o he_o collect_v thus_o therefore_o see_v after_o the_o holy_a ghost_n send_v from_o heaven_n the_o spiritual_a authority_n can_v be_v less_o now_o in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n than_o it_o be_v before_o in_o the_o synagogue_n we_o must_v also_o now_o confess_v that_o the_o king_n who_o have_v despise_v to_o hear_v the_o lord_n speak_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o pope_n may_v be_v so_o deprive_v of_o the_o right_n of_o his_o kingdom_n as_o that_o another_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n may_v be_v anoint_v by_o the_o same_o pope_n and_o that_o from_o that_o day_n he_o be_v true_o king_n who_o the_o pope_n have_v right_o anoint_v or_o otherwise_o consecrate_v and_o not_o he_o who_o be_v arm_v with_o troop_n of_o servant_n do_v usurp_v the_o kingdom_n argument_n 2_o another_o also_o from_o the_o same_o party_n that_o ahias_n the_o silonite_n when_o solomon_n be_v yet_o live_v foretell_v that_o jeroboam_fw-la shall_v be_v ruler_n of_o twelve_o tribe_n 11._o whereof_o say_v he_o it_o be_v conceive_v that_o either_o a_o whole_a kingdom_n or_o some_o part_n may_v be_v take_v away_o by_o the_o spiritual_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n for_o what_o power_n be_v once_o in_o the_o priest_n and_o prophet_n the_o same_o be_v now_o in_o the_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n who_o duty_n it_o be_v so_o to_o tender_v the_o health_n of_o soul_n that_o they_o suffer_v not_o by_o the_o disobedience_n and_o tyranny_n of_o a_o wicked_a king_n people_n of_o a_o infinite_a multitude_n to_o be_v force_v and_o hale_v to_o schism_n and_o heresy_n argument_n 3_o the_o three_o from_o this_o that_o elias_n anoint_v asael_n king_n over_o syria_n and_o jehu_n king_n over_o israel_n and_o anoint_a eliseus_n to_o be_v a_o prophet_n for_o himself_o that_o he_o that_o escape_v the_o hand_n of_o asael_n he_o shall_v jehu_n kill_v and_o he_o that_o have_v escape_v the_o hand_n of_o jehu_n shall_v eliseus_n kill_v by_o which_o figure_n say_v he_o what_o other_o thing_n be_v signify_v then_o that_o many_o magistrate_n be_v for_o this_o end_n raise_v and_o set_v up_o in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n that_o what_o be_v not_o execute_v by_o one_o of_o they_o may_v be_v execute_v by_o the_o other_o of_o which_o power_n the_o last_o and_o most_o principal_a be_v in_o the_o prophet_n that_o be_v in_o the_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n for_o as_o the_o sword_n of_o eliseus_n be_v reckon_v in_o the_o last_o place_n which_o none_o can_v avoid_v although_o he_o have_v escape_v the_o sword_n of_o asael_n and_o jehu_n so_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o spiritual_a power_n can_v by_o no_o mean_n be_v shun_v although_o a_o man_n escape_v the_o sword_n of_o the_o secular_a power_n for_o the_o spiritual_a power_n do_v not_o use_v a_o corporal_a or_o visible_a sword_n which_o may_v be_v hinder_v by_o certain_a mean_n but_o use_v the_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o pass_v through_o all_o place_n and_o pierce_v even_o to_o the_o very_a soul_n of_o he_o who_o it_o strike_v to_o these_o he_o knit_v afterward_o for_o a_o other_o argument_n the_o story_n of_o elias_n weary_a much_o interlace_v with_o diverse_a observation_n and_o allegory_n devise_v by_o himself_o to_o show_v that_o the_o material_a sword_n do_v obey_v the_o spiritual_a and_o that_o not_o only_o the_o pope_n but_o even_o other_o pastor_n
ministry_n likewise_o of_o the_o pope_n whereof_o the_o former_a from_o the_o synagogue_n to_o the_o church_n although_o it_o may_v be_v right_o conclude_v in_o form_n as_o they_o say_v yet_o it_o come_v short_a for_o the_o purpose_n because_o it_o offend_v in_o matter_n because_o the_o synagogue_n have_v never_o have_v any_o temporal_a power_n over_o king_n and_o the_o latter_a be_v not_o of_o force_n but_o in_o that_o case_n that_o the_o same_o may_v befall_v to_o the_o pope_n now_o which_o befall_v to_o samuel_n in_o those_o time_n viz._n that_o as_o the_o lord_n speak_v to_o samuel_n touch_v saul_n so_o he_o shall_v speak_v to_o the_o pope_n by_o name_n about_o the_o abdication_n of_o some_o certain_a king_n and_o of_o substitute_v a_o other_o in_o his_o place_n for_o in_o this_o case_n it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v equal_a to_o samuel_n and_o his_o ministry_n alike_o in_o execute_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n but_o if_o not_o i_o mean_v if_o the_o lord_n have_v not_o express_o speak_v to_o the_o pope_n in_o his_o ear_n i_o pray_v you_o how_o can_v it_o be_v that_o when_o he_o desire_v by_o his_o own_o proper_a authority_n to_o thrust_v any_o king_n out_o of_o his_o throne_n that_o he_o shall_v maintain_v that_o he_o do_v it_o by_o the_o example_n of_o samuel_n who_o god_n do_v delegate_v by_o a_o special_a charge_n and_o a_o extraordinary_a mission_n to_o signify_v his_o decree_n touch_v the_o abdication_n of_o saul_n samuel_n know_v certain_o that_o god_n have_v reject_v saul_n and_o all_o his_o race_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o reign_v for_o the_o lord_n tell_v he_o so_o much_o but_o the_o pope_n know_v not_o whether_o god_n have_v reject_v that_o prince_n who_o he_o desire_v to_o depose_v unless_o god_n have_v special_o reveal_v it_o to_o he_o see_v there_o be_v nothing_o more_o certain_a by_o the_o scripture_n then_o that_o god_n do_v for_o diverse_a cause_n tolerate_v wicked_a king_n and_o contemner_n of_o his_o word_n and_o do_v cause_v they_o to_o reign_v for_o the_o time_n 34._o who_o when_o it_o please_v he_o he_o either_o convert_v to_o he_o or_o evert_v and_o overthrow_v and_o it_o happen_v often_o that_o they_o who_o the_o pope_n who_o judge_v according_a to_o outward_a appearance_n pronounce_v unworthy_a to_o reign_v by_o their_o present_a condition_n and_o state_n of_o life_n those_o the_o lord_n to_o who_o all_o thing_n be_v present_a declare_v to_o be_v most_o worthy_a to_o reign_v their_o mind_n be_v convert_v to_o holiness_n and_o grace_n whereof_o not_o ●ong_o ago_o we_o have_v see_v a_o memorable_a example_n now_o in_o our_o age_n for_o who_o know_v not_o i_o speak_v it_o to_o the_o honour_n and_o glory_n of_o this_o great_a king_n that_o henry_n the_o iv._o who_o now_o most_o happy_o govern_v the_o stern_a of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o france_n and_o i_o pray_v god_n he_o may_v govern_v long_o be_v not_o only_o excommunicate_v by_o gregory_n and_o sixtus_n pope_n but_o also_o be_v so_o reject_v and_o abandon_v and_o deprive_v of_o all_o right_n of_o kingdom_n that_o by_o their_o censure_n they_o declare_v he_o uncapable_a of_o any_o kingdom_n or_o government_n whatsoever_o who_o judgement_n the_o lord_n indeed_o do_v laugh_v to_o scorn_v and_o demonstrate_v that_o the_o king_n which_o be_v reprove_v by_o they_o be_v most_o worthy_a of_o a_o worthy_a kingdom_n see_v then_o these_o thing_n stand_v thus_o and_o be_v alter_v and_o change_v at_o the_o pleasure_n of_o god_n how_o can_v the_o pope_n know_v and_o understand_v the_o pleasure_n and_o will_n of_o god_n unless_o like_v unto_o samuel_n he_o be_v advertise_v before_o therefore_o that_o which_o sanders_n say_v that_o king_n who_o shall_v refuse_v to_o hear_v the_o lord_n speak_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o pope_n etc._n etc._n be_v true_a in_o the_o case_n wherein_o the_o pope_n be_v suppose_v to_o excute_fw-la those_o thing_n which_o the_o lord_n shall_v command_v he_o by_o special_a revelation_n for_o otherwise_o what_o shall_v we_o say_v philip_n the_o fair_a do_v he_o therefore_o disdain_v to_o hear_v the_o lord_n speak_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o pope_n because_o he_o will_v not_o hear_v boniface_n swell_v with_o a_o most_o proud_a ambition_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v think_v that_o he_o may_v be_v by_o boniface_n deprive_v of_o the_o right_n of_o his_o crown_n and_o a_o other_o to_o be_v substitute_v in_o his_o place_n what_o say_v you_o to_o lewes_n the_o xii_o because_o he_o will_v not_o hear_v julius_n the_o ii_o be_v complete_a arm_v and_o play_v the_o soldier_n rather_o than_o the_o pope_n do_v he_o seem_v to_o have_v contemn_v god_n speak_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o pope_n so_o far_o be_v both_o he_o and_o his_o favoure●s_n shall_v deserve_v to_o be_v condemn_v and_o turn_v out_o of_o their_o kingdom_n at_o the_o pleasure_n of_o man_n that_o boil_v inwardlie_o with_o a_o private_a hatred_n against_o he_o to_o believe_v such_o matter_n good_a lord_n shall_v i_o term_v it_o ignorance_n or_o madness_n but_o this_o be_v enough_o touch_v the_o first_o argument_n of_o sander_n propound_v by_o us._n his_o second_o argument_n to_o confess_v plain_o the_o weakness_n of_o my_o wit_n i_o do_v not_o well_o understand_v to_o what_o purpose_n it_o aim_v for_o that_o it_o may_v have_v some_o strength_n and_o force_n to_o prove_v the_o point_n which_o be_v in_o hand_n and_o to_o be_v consequent_a and_o agreeable_a to_o that_o which_o be_v conclude_v we_o must_v of_o force_n admit_v two_o most_o false_a supposition_n as_o true_a and_o necessary_a whereof_o one_o be_v that_o they_o who_o either_o do_v foretell_v any_o thing_n that_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v by_o revelation_n from_o god_n or_o by_o his_o commandment_n will_v any_o thing_n to_o be_v do_v may_v by_o their_o own_o right_n i_o mean_v by_o their_o proper_a authority_n and_o ordinary_a virtue_n of_o then_o office_n without_o any_o special_a revelation_n or_o commandment_n from_o god_n command_v the_o same_o whatsoever_o it_o be_v to_o be_v do_v or_o otherwise_o may_v execute_v and_o discharge_v the_o same_o by_o themselves_o as_o though_o ahias_n the_o silonite_n who_o god_n have_v send_v to_o jeroboam_fw-la with_o a_o special_a charge_n that_o he_o shall_v tell_v he_o that_o he_o will_v give_v he_o ten_o tribe_n out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o solomon_n in_o these_o word_n thus_o say_v the_o lord_n the_o god_n of_o israel_n behold_v i_o will_v rend_v the_o kingdom_n out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o solomon_n and_o will_v give_v theeten_a tribe_n as_o though_o i_o say_v ahias_n without_o any_o such_o express_a commandment_n of_o god_n &_o without_o any_o special_a revelation_n may_v have_v call_v jeroboam_fw-la or_o any_o other_o into_o salomon_n kingdom_n or_o into_o part_n thereof_o then_o which_o nothing_o can_v be_v say_v more_o false_o or_o foolish_o and_o the_o other_o supposition_n be_v that_o all_o priest_n and_o prophet_n of_o the_o old_a law_n have_v authority_n to_o bestow_v &_o to_o take_v away_o kingdom_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o they_o think_v it_o expedient_a for_o the_o safety_n of_o the_o people_n which_o also_o be_v most_o false_a neither_o be_v there_o to_o be_v find_v in_o all_o the_o scripture_n any_o example_n or_o step_n or_o take_v of_o the_o same_o see_v then_o the_o whole_a force_n of_o this_o second_o argument_n be_v so_o ground_v on_o these_o two_o false_a supposition_n that_o it_o can_v be_v right_o conclude_v except_o they_o be_v grant_v &_o that_o it_o be_v evident_a enough_o that_o there_o be_v no_o firm_a consequence_n ápotestate_fw-la delegatia_fw-la principe_fw-la ad_fw-la potestatem_fw-la ordi_fw-la 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v from_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o committee_n from_o a_o prince_n to_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o ordinary_a officer_n who_o do_v not_o see_v by_o his_o own_o judgement_n without_o much_o logic_n that_o all_o this_o business_n which_o he_o have_v draw_v from_o the_o prediction_n of_o ahias_n be_v as_o far_o as_o may_v be_v from_o that_o which_o he_o have_v undertake_v to_o prove_v the_o three_o argument_n also_o be_v even_o of_o the_o same_o stuff_n for_o what_o relation_n have_v the_o extraordinary_a mission_n of_o elias_n for_o the_o special_a execution_n of_o certain_a business_n to_o the_o ordinary_a office_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o what_o coherence_n and_o connexion_n of_o these_o two_o proposition_n can_v there_o be_v elias_n at_o the_o lord_n commandment_n by_o name_n for_o that_o sander_n omit_v which_o notwithstanding_o can_v not_o be_v omit_v without_o blame_n anoint_v asael_n king_n over_o syria_n and_o jehu_n king_n over_o israel_n and_o eliseus_n a_o prophet_n for_o he_o ergo_fw-la the_o pope_n may_v take_v away_o and_o give_v kingdom_n and_o principality_n as_o he_o shall_v think_v good_a for_o
to_o justify_v the_o justice_n of_o that_o deposition_n be_v so_o uncertain_a and_o frivolous_a that_o i_o wonder_v that_o they_o be_v over_o propound_v by_o he_o for_o first_o in_o that_o he_o measure_v the_o equity_n of_o this_o fact_n of_o zachary_n by_o the_o event_n of_o the_o business_n as_o though_o the_o action_n must_v be_v account_v just_a because_o that_o change_n of_o the_o kingdom_n have_v prosperous_a and_o happy_a success_n especial_o say_v he_o since_o the_o event_n do_v teach_v that_o that_o change_n be_v most_o happy_a it_o be_v so_o trivial_a and_o childish_a that_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v conceive_v much_o less_o allege_v in_o write_v by_o such_o a_o man_n careat_fw-la successibus_fw-la opto_fw-la quisquis_fw-la ab_fw-la eventu_fw-la facta_fw-la not_o anda_fw-la pute_fw-la for_o what_o i_o pray_v you_o be_v not_o afterward_o in_o the_o same_o kingdom_n of_o france_n the_o change_n from_o the_o carolovingi●_n to_o the_o capevingii_n make_v with_o great_a injustice_n for_o hugo_n capet_n a_o man_n of_o a_o great_a mind_n and_o may_v in_o the_o state_n when_o none_o be_v able_a to_o repress_v or_o encounter_v his_o practice_n usurp_v the_o kingdom_n by_o force_n &_o arm_n &_o obtain_v the_o crown_n take_v the_o true_a heir_n and_o cast_v he_o into_o prison_n for_o which_o fact_n gaguinus_fw-la call_v he_o a_o usurper_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o yet_o all_o the_o world_n do_v know_v that_o that_o change_n be_v most_o happy_a and_o as_o some_o think_v do_v by_o the_o secret_a judgement_n of_o god_n that_o pipine_n who_o have_v wrongful_o take_v the_o kingdom_n from_o the_o merovingij_fw-la shall_v at_o the_o last_o suffer_v the_o like_a wrong_n in_o his_o posterity_n therefore_o the_o carolovingians_n do_v not_o so_o long_o hold_v the_o kingdom_n if_o they_o be_v compare_v with_o the_o capevingians_n and_o the_o capevingians_n have_v the_o government_n much_o long_o establish_v in_o their_o house_n and_o as_o i_o hope_v will_v have_v for_o ever_o the_o second_o reason_n also_o be_v no_o whit_n strong_a which_o he_o draw_v from_o the_o holiness_n of_o boniface_n the_o bishop_n who_o at_o the_o commandment_n of_o zacharie_n anoint_v and_o crown_v pipine_n king_n add_v say_v he_o to_o these_o that_o he_o who_o anoint_v and_o crown_v king_n pipine_v by_o the_o pope_n commandment_n be_v a_o most_o holy_a man_n viz._n b._n boniface_n bishop_n and_o martyr_n who_o sure_o will_v never_o have_v be_v the_o author_n of_o injustice_n and_o of_o a_o public_a offence_n this_o i_o say_v be_v a_o very_a light_a argument_n and_o of_o no_o weight_n for_o in_o that_o business_n boniface_n be_v only_o a_o minister_n of_o the_o apostolic_a commandment_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v no_o prejudice_n to_o his_o holiness_n which_o he_o execute_v at_o the_o pope_n commandment_n for_o he_o be_v bind_v to_o execute_v the_o pope_n sentence_n g._n although_o he_o know_v it_o to_o be_v injust_a and_o therefore_o although_o the_o injustice_n of_o the_o commandment_n have_v make_v zacharie_n guilty_a yet_o boniface_n have_v be_v declare_v to_o be_v innocent_a by_o the_o order_n of_o serve_v and_o necessity_n of_o obedience_n 5._o therefore_o boniface_n may_v with_o a_o safe_a conscience_n fulfil_v the_o commandment_n of_o zacharie_n though_o it_o be_v injust_a but_o this_o zacharie_n be_v a_o good_a pope_n it_o may_v be_v so_o we_o deny_v it_o not_o so_o be_v david_n a_o good_a king_n and_o holy_a and_o theodosius_n a_o good_a emperor_n marcellinus_n and_o liberius_n be_v both_o good_a pope_n and_o yet_o not_o one_o of_o these_o but_o commit_v some_o thing_n worthy_a of_o blame_n why_o then_o may_v not_o zacharie_n also_o serve_v his_o own_o malice_n or_o love_n and_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o man_n in_o some_o part_n violate_v justice_n it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o zacharie_n in_o those_o time_n do_v stand_v in_o extreme_a need_n of_o pipines_n aid_n against_o the_o injury_n of_o aistulphus_n &_o the_o longobarde_n and_o be_v not_o that_o a_o strong_a engine_n to_o batter_v justice_n think_v you_o love_n hatred_n and_o a_o proper_a gain_n make_v that_o a_o judge_n many_o time_n do_v not_o know_v 1._o the_o truth_n but_o to_o strive_v no_o long_o about_o the_o equity_n of_o this_o act_n of_o zacharie_n let_v it_o be_v as_o they_o will_v have_v it_o let_v we_o grant_v that_o that_o act_n be_v most_o just_a what_o strength_n do_v they_o win_v by_o this_o to_o make_v good_a the_o temporal_a authority_n which_o they_o give_v to_o the_o pope_n over_o prince_n be_v it_o any_o more_o then_o that_o by_o the_o pattern_n of_o that_o action_n the_o pope_n may_v now_o do_v as_o then_o zacharie_n do_v which_o be_v that_o he_o may_v give_v his_o consent_n to_o a_o people_n for_o the_o like_a cause_n &_o respect_n to_o put_v down_o their_o king_n that_o be_v to_o say_v if_o he_o be_v a_o king_n that_o have_v only_o the_o name_n and_o not_o the_o authority_n or_o power_n of_o a_o king_n who_o also_o have_v no_o issue_n like_v to_o die_v in_o orbitie_n and_o of_o mind_n so_o slothful_a and_o so_o blockish_a that_o he_o may_v be_v depose_v without_o any_o bloodshed_n and_o of_o a_o prince_n may_v be_v make_v a_o private_a person_n no_o man_n moan_v his_o fortune_n no_o man_n follow_v his_o party_n for_o a_o argument_n from_o a_o example_n be_v nothing_o unless_o the_o case_n and_o cause_n be_v alike_o in_o each_o respect_n therefore_o this_o example_n of_o zacharie_n what_o make_v it_o to_o establish_v that_o infinite_a authority_n whereon_o the_o pope_n rely_v in_o the_o follow_a age_n have_v attempt_v and_o sometime_o glory_v that_o they_o can_v undertake_v mighty_a king_n abound_v in_o all_o manner_n of_o wealth_n excel_v in_o strength_n both_o of_o mind_n and_o body_n not_o at_o the_o request_n of_o the_o people_n nor_o by_o consent_n only_o but_o of_o their_o proper_a motion_n by_o war_n by_o murder_n by_o schism_n by_o great_a misery_n of_o the_o christian_a commonwealth_n to_o deprive_v they_o of_o their_o kingdom_n and_o to_o spoil_v they_o of_o their_o crown_n and_o sceptre_n will_v any_o wise_a man_n judge_v that_o this_o be_v lawful_a for_o they_o to_o do_v by_o the_o example_n of_o zacharias_n his_o act_n but_o of_o this_o matter_n enough_o chap._n xlii_o the_o death_n of_o the_o author_n envy_v we_o this_o last_o part_n of_o the_o book_n finis_fw-la finis_fw-la 〈…〉_z 〈…〉_z 〈◊〉_d 111._o ad_fw-la 〈…〉_z deo_fw-la re●ertur_fw-la do_v 9_o can_n 10._o 10._o th●_n bozim_n bozim_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 1●_n 1●_n lib._n 5._o cap._n ult._n ult._n matth._n 8._o luk._n 9_o rom._n 13._o 13._o can._n duo_fw-la sunt_fw-la can_n cum_fw-la ad_fw-la verum_fw-la 96._o do_v cap._n novit_fw-la de_fw-fr iudic_n cap._n per_fw-la ve_fw-la nerabilem_fw-la qui_fw-la filii_fw-la sunt_fw-la legit_fw-la legit_fw-la cap._n 6._o 6._o lib._n 2._o de_fw-la libre_fw-la christ._n cap._n 2._o 2._o matth._n 22._o mark_n 12._o 12._o in_o c●p_a inquisition_n de_fw-mi send_v excom_n excom_n dict._n can_v cum_fw-la ad_fw-la verum_fw-la 96._o do_v do_v 1_o l._n 2._o c._n cov_n de_fw-fr legate_n legate_n l._n s●re_n leges_fw-la d._n the_o legib_n legib_n lib._n 5._o de_fw-fr rome_n pont._n cap._n 3._o lib._n 5._o de_fw-fr rom._n 〈◊〉_d ●ap_n 3._o 3._o see_v the_o admonition_n to_o the_o reader_n reader_n job._n 5._o ca._n 7._o hierar_fw-it eccl._n l._n b._n 1._o de_fw-la upon_o rom._n cap._n 29._o 29._o at_o rom._n 13._o 13._o ilb_n 5._o de_fw-la rom._n pont._n c._n 7._o 7._o l._n illud_fw-la d._n ad_fw-la leg_n aquil._n aquil._n act._n 5._o 5._o 1._o cor._n 5._o 5._o cap_n 14._o 14._o lib._n 2._o epist._n 61._o indict_v 11._o 11._o serm_n 29_o le_fw-fr 〈…〉_z tom_fw-mi 10._o ex._n 〈…〉_z 5._o 〈◊〉_d regin_v aug._n &_o 〈◊〉_d 5._o contra_fw-la reg._n franc._n franc._n lib._n 5._o cap_n 2._o 2._o cap._n ●ler_fw-fr de_fw-fr immunit_fw-la aec_fw-la l._n in_o 6._o 6._o clem._n de_fw-fr imunit_fw-la eccl_n ubi_fw-la glos_fw-la ●d_a nota●_n nota●_n lib_fw-la 1_o hist_o 〈…〉_z 〈…〉_z lib_fw-la 3._o de_fw-la cons_n ad_fw-la eugenium_fw-la eugenium_fw-la lib_fw-la 3._o de_fw-la cons_n ad_fw-la eugenium_fw-la eugenium_fw-la in_o vita_fw-la bonif._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d lib_fw-la ●_o hist._n in_o vita_fw-la philip._n pul._n pul._n see_v the_o admonition_n to_o the_o reader_n cap._n per_fw-la venerabilem_fw-la qui_fw-fr fill_n sunt_fw-la legit_fw-la legit_fw-la can._n ficut_fw-la can._n excommunicatos_fw-la xi_o q._n 3._o 3._o cap._n 21._o 21._o lib._n 3_o contra_fw-la epist._n parm._n c._n 2._o 2._o psal._n 118._o 118._o lib_fw-la 5._o de_fw-la rom._n pont._n cap._n 3._o 3._o lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr indict_v 13._o epist_n 31._o 31._o i._o 5_o §_o generaliter_fw-la d._n the_o don_n inter_fw-la vir_fw-la &_o uxor_fw-la uxor_fw-la panor_n in_o cap._n ludum_fw-la 54._o the_o elect_a &_o cap._n 〈◊〉_d pridem_fw-la 〈◊〉_d pact_n pact_n cap._n 18._o see_v the_o admonition_n to_o the_o reader_n reader_n lib_fw-la 5_o
gvil_n barclaii_n j._n c._n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n whether_o and_o how_o far_o forth_o he_o have_v power_n and_o authority_n over_o temporal_a king_n and_o prince_n libre_fw-la posthumus_fw-la at_o london_n imprint_v by_o arnold_n hatfield_n for_o william_n aspley_n 1611._o to_o the_o most_o holy_a father_n and_o lord_n clement_n the_o 8._o pope_n w._n barclay_n wish_v health_n if_o rome_n from_o peter_n to_o this_o day_n have_v see_v such_o bishop_n as_o your_o holiness_n be_v most_o high_a father_n and_o prelate_n of_o christian_n there_o have_v be_v no_o place_n for_o this_o question_n at_o this_o time_n your_o moderation_n and_o gentleness_n answerable_a to_o your_o name_n either_o have_v not_o open_v any_o gap_n to_o this_o business_n or_o have_v bar_v the_o same_o by_o some_o grave_a provision_n that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v open_v i_o have_v here_o discuss_v the_o question_n touch_v the_o temporal_a authority_n of_o your_o see_n over_o king_n and_o prince_n which_o have_v be_v canuass_v with_o so_o great_a trouble_n and_o so_o much_o blood_n have_v as_o oft_o afflict_v the_o church_n as_o the_o prince_n themselves_o i_o have_v also_o dedicate_v the_o same_o to_o you_o lest_o i_o may_v seem_v either_o to_o have_v shun_v your_o judgement_n or_o to_o have_v manage_v rather_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o king_n then_o of_o the_o church_n if_o i_o have_v not_o please_v every_o man_n taste_n i_o desire_v they_o to_o consider_v that_o no_o medicine_n bring_v health_n without_o bitterness_n it_o be_v peradventure_o a_o odious_a argument_n to_o such_o as_o be_v scrupulous_a or_o malicious_a to_o pervert_v my_o sense_n and_o meaning_n which_o not_o withstand_v most_o holy_a father_n i_o have_v undertake_v partly_o out_o of_o the_o love_n of_o the_o truth_n partly_o also_o for_o that_o i_o have_v be_v of_o opinion_n that_o this_o authoritic_n be_v the_o fountain_n of_o all_o those_o tempest_n wherewith_o heresy_n toss_v your_o ship_n at_o this_o day_n pope_n julius_n the_o 2._o be_v alienate_v with_o a_o sudden_a unkindness_n do_v not_o only_a thunder_n against_o lewes_n the_o 12._o king_n of_o france_n but_o also_o deprive_v john_n king_n of_o navarre_n of_o his_o kingdom_n because_o he_o assist_v the_o french_a and_o out_o of_o question_n lewes_n his_o good_a fortune_n put_v by_o that_o thunderbolt_n from_o france_n but_o the_o navarrois_n hear_v the_o spaniard_n of_o one_o side_n and_o be_v exclude_v on_o the_o other_o side_n by_o the_o mountain_n of_o pyrene_n from_o the_o help_n of_o france_n be_v not_o able_a to_o make_v his_o part_n good_a against_o the_o fury_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o ambition_n of_o spain_n be_v spoil_v of_o the_o great_a part_n of_o his_o kingdom_n he_o retire_v into_o france_n where_o he_o have_v a_o large_a and_o ancient_a patrimony_n in_o the_o neck_n of_o this_o come_v the_o fire_n which_o luther_n kindle_v and_o the_o heir_n of_o john_n king_n of_o navarre_n inflame_v with_o their_o private_a hatred_n do_v very_o soon_o pass_v to_o that_o side_n which_o bandy_v against_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n therefore_o come_v heresy_n first_o to_o be_v seatter_v through_o france_n by_o the_o partiality_n of_o those_o prince_n which_o through_o the_o fiam_a fire_n and_o after_o through_o war_n have_v continue_v to_o this_o day_n as_o for_o henry_n the_o 8_o king_n of_o england_n who_o doubt_v that_o he_o depart_v not_o so_o much_o from_o the_o religion_n as_o from_o the_o pope_n out_o of_o his_o hatred_n against_o the_o very_a same_o authority_n clemens_n the_o 7._o have_v denounce_v henry_n deprive_v of_o the_o right_n and_o interest_n of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o he_o again_o conceive_v a_o anger_n which_o peradventure_o be_v not_o unjust_a of_o his_o part_n but_o blind_a and_o intemperate_a he_o open_v england_n to_o heretic_n by_o the_o occasion_n of_o this_o schism_n who_o afterward_o grow_v strong_a under_o edward_n the_o 6_o destroy_v the_o ancient_a religion_n again_o scotland_n affect_v with_o the_o neighbourhood_n and_o communion_n of_o england_n have_v hold_v out_o under_o james_n the_o 5_o at_o length_n be_v attaint_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o mary_n reign_n and_o present_o after_o infect_v when_o the_o poison_n have_v gather_v further_a strength_n so_o what_o heresy_n or_o heretic_n soever_o be_v in_o france_n and_o britanny_n at_o this_o day_n which_o be_v their_o only_o strong_a hold_n be_v conceive_v and_o hatch_v by_o this_o lamentable_a warmth_n of_o the_o temporal_a authothoritie_n as_o a_o pestilent_a egg_n behold_v most_o holy_a father_n how_o little_a good_a it_o do_v the_o church_n to_o challenge_v this_o command_n which_o like_o scianus_n his_o horse_n have_v ever_o cast_v his_o master_n to_o the_o ground_n therefore_o have_v i_o undertake_v this_o work_n out_o of_o my_o affection_n to_o religion_n and_o truth_n not_o to_o the_o prince_n and_o of_o a_o sincere_a and_o humble_a mind_n have_v present_v the_o same_o to_o you_o the_o chief_a pastor_n to_o who_o it_o appertain_v to_o judge_v of_o leper_n and_o leper_n if_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n in_o these_o write_n which_o you_o shall_v think_v good_a and_o profitable_a i_o shall_v comfort_v my_o old_a age_n with_o the_o most_o sweet_a remembrance_n of_o so_o great_a a_o witness_n but_o if_o allow_v my_o affection_n yet_o you_o shall_v not_o allow_v my_o judgement_n it_o shall_v be_v to_o posterity_n a_o argument_n of_o your_o moderation_n that_o under_o you_o the_o simple_a liberty_n of_o disputation_n have_v not_o be_v prejudicial_a to_o any_o let_v this_o be_v a_o argument_n of_o your_o moderation_n but_o never_o of_o my_o obstinacy_n for_o whatsoever_o be_v in_o this_o business_n i_o leave_v it_o to_o your_o censure_n that_o in_o this_o book_n i_o may_v seem_v not_o so_o much_o to_o have_v deliver_v what_o i_o think_v as_o to_o have_v inquire_v of_o your_o holiness_n what_o i_o ought_v to_o think_v fare_v you_o well_o the_o content_n of_o the_o several_a chapter_n contain_v in_o this_o book_n chap._n 1._o the_o author_n profess_v his_o catholic_a disposition_n to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n and_o his_o sincerity_n in_o the_o handle_n of_o this_o question_n the_o opinion_n of_o the_o divine_n and_o canonist_n touch_v the_o pope_n authority_n in_o temporal_a matter_n and_o particular_o touch_v bozius_n a_o canonist_n chap._n 2._o of_o the_o different_a nature_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a and_o temporal_a power_n and_o a_o taxation_n of_o bozius_n his_o sophistry_n touch_v the_o same_o chap._n 3._o that_o the_o apostle_n practise_v no_o temporal_a jurisdiction_n but_o rather_o enjoined_a obedience_n to_o be_v give_v even_o to_o heathen_a prince_n and_o a_o comparison_n between_o the_o ambition_n and_o usurpation_n of_o the_o late_a pope_n and_o humility_n of_o the_o ancient_a chap._n 4._o that_o the_o late_a pope_n serve_v themselves_o of_o two_o advantage_n to_o draw_v to_o themselves_o this_o vast_a authority_n temporal_a over_o prince_n viz._n partly_o through_o the_o great_a reverence_n which_o be_v bear_v to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n partly_o through_o the_o terror_n of_o the_o thunder_n bolt_n of_o excommunication_n chap._n 5._o that_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v by_o any_o authority_n either_o divine_a or_o humane_a that_o the_o pope_n either_o direct_o or_o indirect_o have_v any_o temporal_a authority_n over_o any_o christian_a prince_n chap._n 6._o that_o no_o instance_n can_v be_v give_v of_o any_o pope_n of_o high_a time_n that_o any_o such_o authority_n be_v usurp_v and_o practise_v by_o they_o and_o a_o vehement_a deploration_n of_o the_o miserable_a condition_n of_o these_o late_a time_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o modesty_n and_o piety_n of_o the_o former_a chap._n 7._o a_o answer_n make_v to_o a_o excuse_n pretend_v by_o bellarmine_n that_o the_o ancient_a church_n can_v not_o without_o much_o hurt_n to_o the_o people_n coerce_a and_o chastise_v the_o old_a emperor_n and_o king_n and_o therefore_o forbear_v they_o more_o than_o now_o she_o need_v to_o do_v chap._n 8._o that_o the_o ancient_a church_n want_v neither_o skill_n nor_o courage_n to_o execute_v any_o lawful_a power_n upon_o evil_a prince_n but_o she_o forbear_v to_o do_v it_o in_o regard_n she_o know_v not_o any_o such_o power_n over_o they_o chap._n 9_o that_o it_o be_v a_o false_a ground_n lay_v by_o bellarmine_n that_o henry_n the_o 4._o emperor_n and_o other_o christian_a prince_n upon_o who_o the_o pope_n have_v practise_v their_o pretend_a temporal_a authority_n may_v be_v deal_v withal_o more_o secure_o than_o the_o former_a prince_n chap._n 10._o the_o censure_n of_o the_o worthy_a bishop_n frisingen_n upon_o the_o course_n which_o gregory_n the_o 7._o take_v against_o henry_n the_o 4._o emperor_n and_o the_o issue_n thereof_o how_o lamentable_a to_o the_o church_n and_o unfortunate_a to_o the_o pope_n himself_o chap._n 11._o a_o reason_n suppose_v for_o the_o tolerancie_n and_o
heart_n those_o word_n do_v testify_v which_o he_o write_v more_o express_o about_o the_o end_n of_o that_o epistle_n of_o his_o necessary_a subjection_n and_o obedience_n towards_o the_o emperor_n mauricius_n have_v make_v a_o law_n which_o though_o it_o be_v unjust_a and_o prejudicial_a to_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o gregory_n receive_v a_o commandment_n from_o the_o emperor_n to_o publish_v it_o do_v send_v it_o according_o into_o diverse_a country_n to_o be_v proclaim_v therefore_o thus_o he_o conclude_v that_o epistle_n i_o be_v subject_n to_o the_o commandment_n have_v cause_v the_o same_o law_n to_o be_v send_v abroad_o into_o diverse_a part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o because_o the_o same_o law_n be_v no_o whit_n please_v to_o almighty_a god_n behold_v i_o have_v signify_v so_o much_o to_o my_o honourable_a lord_n by_o this_o letter_n of_o my_o suggestion_n therefore_o in_o both_o respect_v i_o have_v discharge_v my_o duty_n in_o that_o i_o have_v both_o perform_v my_o obedience_n to_o the_o emperor_n and_o have_v not_o conceal_v that_o which_o i_o think_v on_o god_n behalf_n o_o divine_a prelate_n and_o speech_n to_o be_v continual_o remember_v to_o all_o succeed_a bishop_n of_o all_o age_n but_o o_o god_n whether_o be_v that_o gentle_a and_o humble_a confession_n banish_v out_o of_o our_o world_n to_o which_o this_o threaten_a and_o insolent_a speech_n against_o king_n and_o emperor_n have_v by_o little_a and_o little_o succeed_v we_o be_v place_v in_o the_o supreme_a throne_n of_o justice_n possess_v the_o supreme_a power_n over_o all_o king_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o universal_a earth_n over_o all_o people_n country_n nation_n which_o be_v commit_v to_o we_o not_o by_o humane_a but_o by_o divine_a ordinance_n do_v declare_v will_n command_n franc._n etc._n etc._n which_o word_n it_o be_v plain_a even_o by_o this_o that_o they_o be_v false_a and_o vain_a because_o the_o pope_n have_v neither_o spiritual_a nor_o temporal_a power_n over_o unbelieve_a prince_n and_o people_n as_o bellarmine_n with_o very_o good_a reason_n show_v in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n 2._o these_o and_o such_o like_a fashion_n as_o these_o who_o will_v they_o not_o drive_v into_o amazement_n and_o wonder_n at_o so_o great_a a_o change_n of_o the_o pope_n state_n and_o government_n or_o do_v they_o not_o give_v to_o all_o man_n just_a cause_n to_o inquire_v wherefore_o the_o former_a pope_n in_o the_o most_o flourish_a age_n of_o the_o church_n acknowledge_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o servant_n subject_n and_o vassal_n of_o prince_n and_o obey_v their_o authority_n in_o temporal_a matter_n when_o as_o they_o notwithstanding_o be_v over_o they_o in_o spiritual_a and_o our_o late_a pope_n profess_v themselves_o to_o be_v lord_n of_o all_o king_n prince_n country_n and_o nation_n in_o very_a truth_n this_o matter_n do_v give_v no_o small_a occasion_n to_o many_o learned_a man_n and_o good_a catholic_n to_o doubt_v of_o the_o justness_n of_o this_o change_n yea_o indeed_o to_o believe_v that_o a_o temporal_a government_n so_o great_a and_o so_o absolute_a have_v his_o beginning_n in_o the_o person_n of_o pope_n not_o from_o god_n omnipotent_a but_o from_o the_o impotent_a ambition_n of_o certain_a man_n and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o beginning_n confer_v from_o heaven_n upon_o peter_n by_o the_o lord_n christ_n but_o be_v usurp_v by_o certain_a successor_n of_o peter_n many_o age_n after_o according_a to_o the_o fashion_n of_o the_o world_n that_o be_v certain_a pope_n have_v a_o mass_v huge_a store_n of_o wealth_n and_o riches_n and_o foster_a their_o blind_a ambition_n and_o sury_n by_o little_a and_o little_o challenge_v that_o greatness_n to_o themselves_o whereby_o they_o labour_v and_o strive_v that_o it_o may_v be_v lawful_a for_o they_o to_o take_v away_o and_o bestow_v what_o soever_o kingdom_n and_o principality_n be_v in_o the_o world_n sure_o they_o be_v man_n and_o as_o other_o man_n be_v sometime_o too_o greedy_a of_o vanity_n as_o be_v he_o who_o only_o for_o the_o malice_n he_o bear_v against_o philip_n the_o fair_a king_n of_o france_n set_v forth_o a_o decretal_a constitution_n 6._o which_o bring_v forth_o so_o many_o scandal_n so_o many_o danger_n that_o it_o deserve_v forthwith_o to_o be_v abrogate_a by_o boniface_n his_o successor_n nota●_n now_o the_o admirable_a and_o miserable_a assentation_n of_o certain_a flatterer_n give_v increase_v and_o nourishment_n to_o that_o vice_n in_o they_o who_o by_o their_o fond_a and_o foolish_a assertion_n such_o as_o now_o these_o bozian_a fancy_n be_v affirm_v that_o all_o thing_n be_v lawful_a for_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o by_o god_n law_n all_o thing_n be_v subject_a to_o he_o whereby_o we_o may_v marvel_v the_o less_o if_o many_o of_o they_o do_v so_o far_o forget_v their_o bishoplike_a and_o apostolic_a modesty_n that_o through_o a_o desire_n to_o enlarge_v their_o power_n they_o encroch_v upon_o other_o man_n border_n of_o who_o gaguinus_fw-la a_o learned_a man_n and_o religious_a tax_v by_o the_o way_n a_o authority_n so_o far_o spread_v and_o usurp_a as_o he_o call_v it_o 〈…〉_z therefore_o so_o great_a say_v he_o be_v their_o height_n and_o state_n that_o make_v small_a reckon_v of_o king_n they_o glory_v that_o they_o may_v do_v all_o thing_n neither_o have_v any_o in_o my_o time_n come_v to_o the_o popedom_n who_o have_v once_o get_v the_o place_n have_v not_o forthwith_o advance_v his_o nephew_n to_o great_a wealth_n and_o honour_n and_o long_o before_o gaguinus_fw-la s._n bernard_n eugenium_fw-la do_v not_o in_o these_o date_n ambition_n more_o than_o devotion_n wear_v the_o threshold_n of_o the_o apostle_n eugenium_fw-la upon_o this_o occasion_n platina_n 〈◊〉_d in_o this_o manner_n die_v that_o boniface_n who_o endeavour_v to_o strike_v terror_n rather_o than_o religion_n into_o emperor_n king_n prince_n nation_n peoples_n who_o also_o labour_v to_o give_v kingdom_n and_o to_o take_v they_o away_o to_o famish_v man_n and_o to_o reduce_v they_o at_o his_o own_o pleasure_n and_o the_o same_o gaguinus_fw-la in_o another_o place_n pul._n such_o a_o end_n of_o his_o life_n have_v boniface_n the_o disdainer_n of_o all_o man_n who_o little_o remember_v the_o precept_n of_o christ_n endeavour_v to_o take_v away_o and_o to_o bestow_v kingdom_n at_o his_o pleasure_n when_o as_o he_o know_v well_o enough_o that_o he_o stand_v in_o his_o place_n here_o in_o earth_n who_o kingdom_n be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n nor_o of_o earthly_a matter_n but_o of_o heavenly_a who_o also_o have_v procure_v the_o popedom_n by_o subtlety_n and_o wicked_a practice_n and_o keep_v caelestinus_n in_o prison_n while_o he_o live_v a_o most_o holy_a man_n of_o who_o he_o receive_v honour_n chap._n iu._n now_o i_o do_v chief_o find_v two_o thing_n which_o seem_v to_o have_v give_v unto_o the_o pope_n the_o opportunity_n to_o arrogate_v so_o great_a power_n to_o themselves_o the_o one_o be_v the_o very_a great_a honour_n which_o as_o indeed_o there_o be_v reason_n be_v give_v to_o the_o chief_a pastor_n of_o soul_n by_o prince_n and_o christian_n people_n and_o yet_o aught_o to_o be_v give_v to_o he_o and_o the_o forestall_a and_o settle_a opinion_n of_o the_o sanctity_n of_o that_o sea_n of_o the_o bless_a apostle_n peter_n and_o paul_n which_o be_v conspicuous_a and_o excel_v among_o all_o man_n in_o all_o spiritual_a honour_n and_o authority_n and_o in_o that_o respect_n have_v be_v beyond_o all_o other_o most_o increase_v and_o honour_v with_o wealth_n and_o riches_n by_o these_o mean_v all_o man_n be_v very_o easy_o persuade_v to_o believe_v that_o neither_o the_o pope_n in_o regard_n of_o his_o holiness_n will_v challenge_v to_o himself_o any_o authority_n which_o do_v not_o appertain_v unto_o he_o and_o also_o that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o a_o christian_n man_n in_o any_o manner_n to_o disobey_v the_o pope_n commandment_n whereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o sundry_a pope_n who_o mind_n be_v too_o much_o addict_v to_o ambition_n and_o vain_a glory_n embouldn_v and_o hearten_v through_o the_o confidence_n of_o this_o so_o great_a reverence_n and_o affection_n of_o man_n towards_o they_o draw_v to_o themselves_o this_o power_n over_o king_n which_o be_v utter_o unknowen_a to_o the_o first_o successor_n of_o peter_n the_o which_o also_o pass_v the_o more_o currant_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o preoccupate_v and_o now_o engraft_a conceit_n of_o the_o people_n and_o ignorant_a folk_n who_o be_v possess_v of_o this_o opinion_n of_o holiness_n do_v very_o believe_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o err_v either_o in_o word_n or_o deed_n and_o also_o by_o the_o write_n of_o certain_a clergy_n man_n catholic_n and_o canonist_n who_o either_o err_a through_o ignorance_n of_o the_o truth_n or_o whole_o resolve_v into_o flattery_n of_o their_o prince_n the_o pope_n of_o who_o they_o do_v
depend_v do_v heap_n and_o lay_v upon_o his_o only_a person_n all_o the_o power_n which_o be_v in_o the_o universal_a world_n with_o these_o allurement_n and_o invitation_n the_o pope_n who_o of_o their_o own_o accord_n run_v with_o speed_n enough_o towards_o honour_n and_o greatness_n be_v now_o much_o more_o inflame_a as_o it_o be_v with_o certain_a new_a firebrand_n of_o ambition_n and_o aspire_a thought_n for_o all_o how_o many_o soever_o hold_v that_o sea_n lawful_o govern_v the_o church_n with_o a_o authority_n reader_n equal_a to_o peter_n but_o not_o all_o of_o they_o burn_v with_o the_o zeal_n of_o peter_n govern_v it_o with_o equal_a disposition_n to_o he_o nay_o i_o can_v not_o write_v it_o without_o grief_n of_o heart_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o many_o creep_v into_o that_o place_n by_o violence_n and_o villainy_n other_o do_v break_v into_o it_o and_o defile_v the_o most_o holy_a chair_n with_o the_o filthiness_n of_o their_o life_n and_o behaviour_n other_o also_o who_o be_v advance_v to_o the_o height_n of_o that_o dignity_n burn_v with_o a_o ambitious_a desire_n of_o rule_v and_o out_o of_o their_o emulation_n and_o envy_n against_o secular_a king_n and_o prince_n endeavour_v by_o all_o devise_n and_o cunning_a to_o enlarge_v the_o bound_n of_o their_o government_n which_o in_o the_o beginning_n be_v mere_o spiritual_a with_o the_o increase_n of_o temporal_a jurisdiction_n and_o authority_n which_o affectation_n although_o at_o the_o first_o diverse_a suppose_v to_o be_v a_o grace_n and_o ornament_n to_o that_o great_a dignity_n which_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n in_o earth_n and_o the_o successor_n of_o bless_a peter_n do_v hold_v yet_o when_o some_o of_o they_o grow_v to_o that_o insolency_n that_o they_o suppose_v it_o lawful_a for_o they_o not_o only_o to_o throw_v down_o king_n from_o their_o throne_n but_o also_o to_o give_v away_o great_a and_o goodly_a kingdom_n for_o reward_n nay_o for_o a_o pray_v and_o to_o grant_v they_o to_o any_o that_o will_v seize_v upon_o they_o then_o sure_o there_o be_v no_o reasonable_a man_n but_o he_o great_o mislike_v that_o unreasonable_a pride_n of_o mind_n and_o either_o shed_v tear_n or_o conceive_v great_a anger_n at_o the_o same_o who_o be_v there_o at_o that_o time_n that_o do_v not_o either_o mourn_v inward_o or_o gnash_v his_o tooth_n in_o his_o head_n when_o that_o most_o proud_a pope_n who_o we_o mention_v before_o presume_v so_o arrogant_o to_o deprive_v that_o most_o mighty_a monarch_n philip_n the_o fair_a of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o to_o bestow_v it_o together_o with_o the_o empire_n upon_o albert_n duke_n of_o austria_n and_o that_o for_o no_o other_o reason_n in_o the_o world_n but_o because_o the_o king_n have_v lay_v his_o legate_n by_o the_o heel_n for_o threaten_v he_o in_o so_o saucy_a manner_n as_o he_o do_v as_o though_o by_o that_o act_n the_o king_n of_o france_n who_o a_o little_a before_o innocent_a the_o 3_o have_v ingenious_o confess_v legit_fw-la that_o he_o have_v no_o superior_a in_o temporal_a matter_n he_o have_v resign_v his_o kingdom_n to_o the_o pope_n as_o client_n and_o feudaire_n to_o he_o for_o so_o he_o denounce_v to_o the_o king_n by_o the_o archdeacon_n of_o narbona_n that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o fraence_n be_v eschete_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o his_o contumacy_n and_o violate_v of_o the_o law_n of_o nation_n which_o speech_n of_o he_o what_o do_v it_o else_o imply_v but_o that_o this_o kingdom_n in_o all_o man_n judgement_n the_o most_o free_a and_o flourish_a kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n and_o by_o example_n and_o precedent_n thereof_o all_o other_o christian_a kingdom_n be_v as_o benefice_n and_o feude_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o even_o of_o the_o pope_n himself_o see_v they_o can_v not_o otherwise_o escheat_n to_o that_o church_n for_o contumacy_n &_o felony_n as_o they_o term_v it_o unless_o the_o direct_a temporal_a dominion_n and_o fee_n of_o those_o kingdom_n be_v in_o the_o same_o church_n the_o other_o occasion_n of_o affect_v so_o great_a a_o temporal_a jurisdiction_n be_v present_v by_o the_o sword_n of_o excommunication_n the_o principal_a bulwark_n of_o the_o spiritual_a government_n which_o be_v so_o great_a terror_n to_o the_o world_n that_o the_o people_n dare_v neither_o neglect_n nor_o contemn_v the_o pope_n curse_n be_v arm_v &_o fortify_v howsoever_o by_o right_a or_o by_o wrong_n with_o the_o thunderbolt_n of_o excommunication_n and_o this_o voice_n do_v usual_o sound_v out_o of_o pulpit_n that_o every_o excommunication_n although_o it_o be_v unjust_a be_v to_o be_v fear_v and_o that_o it_o belong_v only_o to_o the_o pope_n to_o judge_v whether_o it_o be_v just_a or_o unjust_a beside_o that_o also_o that_o a_o man_n ought_v neither_o to_o eat_v nor_o to_o have_v any_o commerce_n with_o excommunicate_a person_n 3._o with_o which_o warning_n and_o threaten_n the_o subject_n of_o prince_n excommunicate_v be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n terrify_v do_v fall_v from_o their_o obedience_n and_o that_o which_o in_o evil_n of_o this_o nature_n be_v the_o worst_a of_o all_o the_o pope_n partly_o by_o threaten_v of_o the_o like_a curse_n partly_o by_o persuasion_n and_o gift_n raise_v other_o prince_n against_o a_o prince_n that_o have_v be_v excommunicate_a by_o he_o for_o this_o cause_n those_o prince_n upon_o who_o this_o malice_n of_o the_o pope_n do_v sit_v so_o hard_o be_v wrap_v in_o so_o many_o danger_n on_o every_o side_n and_o expose_v to_o such_o a_o hazard_n of_o their_o estate_n make_v choice_n rather_o to_o pacific_a a_o angry_a pope_n with_o the_o submission_n of_o their_o crown_n and_o sceptre_n and_o to_o redeem_v their_o vexation_n then_o for_o their_o own_o particular_a to_o embroyle_v all_o the_o world_n and_o to_o set_v all_o a_o fire_n with_o sedition_n and_o arm_n this_o short_a and_o compendious_a way_n have_v pope_n to_o exanimate_a and_o daunt_v king_n and_o prince_n with_o fear_n and_o almost_o to_o obtain_v a_o victory_n without_o strike_v stroke_n notwithstanding_o many_o prince_n of_o good_a resolution_n withstand_v such_o attempt_n and_o proffer_n of_o pope_n and_o that_o so_o stiff_o that_o the_o mischief_n which_o follow_v thereon_o turn_v rather_o to_o the_o pope_n hindrance_n then_o the_o prince_n but_o in_o this_o place_n the_o reader_n may_v please_v to_o be_v advertise_v that_o this_o opinion_n which_o be_v so_o rife_o in_o every_o man_n mouth_n that_o every_o excommunication_n be_v to_o be_v fear_v aught_o to_o be_v understand_v with_o this_o exception_n without_o that_o it_o manifest_o appear_v that_o it_o be_v unjust_a for_o than_o it_o be_v neither_o to_o be_v regard_v nor_o fear_v so_o as_o the_o party_n excommunicate_v be_v free_a from_o contempt_n and_o presumption_n for_o than_o it_o work_v backward_o and_o hurt_v not_o he_o against_o who_o it_o be_v cast_v but_o he_o from_o who_o it_o be_v cast_v of_o which_o sort_n that_o excommunication_n seem_v to_o be_v which_o be_v charge_v upon_o subject_n because_o they_o obey_v their_o king_n or_o prince_n be_v excommunicate_a in_o those_o thing_n which_o belong_v to_o temporal_a jurisdiction_n and_o do_v not_o repugn_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n as_o shall_v hereafter_o be_v declare_v in_o a_o more_o convenient_a place_n 21._o beside_o neither_o be_v that_o always_o true_a that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o have_v commerce_n or_o eat_v meat_n with_o excommunicate_a person_n for_o in_o this_o case_n it_o be_v not_o true_a where_o the_o danger_n be_v apparent_a least_o by_o such_o a_o separation_n some_o great_a mischief_n arise_v in_o the_o church_n as_o usual_o it_o do_v when_o a_o prince_n be_v excommunicate_a if_o his_o subject_n forbear_v to_o communicate_v with_o he_o for_o there_o be_v never_o any_o prince_n so_o much_o forlorn_v who_o can_v find_v friend_n and_o client_n by_o who_o aid_n and_o arm_n he_o may_v maintain_v his_o cause_n although_o it_o be_v never_o so_o unjust_a with_o great_a hurt_n both_o to_o church_n and_o commonweal_n whereof_o both_o in_o the_o memory_n of_o our_o forefather_n and_o in_o our_o own_o age_n there_o have_v be_v lamentable_a example_n in_o christian_a country_n where_o i_o say_v any_o such_o thing_n be_v fear_v a_o separation_n of_o body_n be_v not_o necessary_a but_o it_o be_v enough_o to_o be_v sever_v from_o such_o in_o heart_n to_o be_v distinguish_v by_o life_n and_o manner_n for_o the_o preservation_n of_o peace_n and_o unity_n which_o be_v to_o be_v preserve_v for_o the_o health_n of_o those_o which_o be_v weak_a as_o s._n austin_n excellent_o teach_v 2._o whereby_o it_o seem_v to_o follow_v that_o the_o pope_n do_v very_o unaduised_o who_o forbid_v the_o subject_n communion_n and_o society_n with_o their_o prince_n so_o oft_o as_o no_o small_a both_o division_n and_o confusion_n hang_v over_o church_n and_o commonwealth_n yea_o that_o in_o such_o a_o case_n
the_o subject_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o obey_v the_o pope_n command_v the_o separation_n of_o their_o body_n but_o of_o this_o matter_n more_o in_o his_o place_n by_o these_o and_o the_o like_a it_o appear_v as_o i_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o east_n time_n of_o the_o church_n usurp_v to_o themselves_o this_o temporal_a power_n over_o prince_n which_o none_o of_o all_o their_o ancestor_n do_v ever_o acknowledge_v neither_o in_o the_o first_o nor_o in_o the_o middle_a time_n and_o indeed_o gregory_n the_o 7._o be_v exasperate_v partly_o with_o the_o public_a offence_n of_o henry_n the_o 4._o the_o emperor_n and_o partly_o with_o a_o private_a injury_n do_v first_o of_o all_o challenge_n to_o himself_o that_o right_a and_o power_n to_o give_v and_o take_v away_o kingdom_n affirm_v that_o christ_n do_v give_v to_o peter_n and_o his_o successor_n all_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n in_o this_o verse_n petra_n dedit_fw-la petro_n petrus_n diadema_fw-la rodolpho_n but_o gregory_n raise_v nothing_o of_o that_o action_n but_o bloody_a and_o rage_a tragedy_n and_o be_v hinder_v by_o force_n and_o arm_n that_o he_o can_v not_o effect_v his_o unhappy_a design_n now_o that_o the_o church_n in_o her_o first_o time_n have_v no_o such_o power_n nay_o do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o suppose_v that_o she_o have_v any_o such_o power_n it_o be_v clear_o prove_v out_o of_o that_o epistle_n of_o hosius_n which_o we_o allege_v to_o constantius_n infect_v with_o the_o arrian_n heresy_n and_o also_o vex_v liberius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o other_o orthodoxal_a bishop_n with_o banishment_n and_o sundry_a other_o misery_n for_o in_o that_o place_n that_o worthy_a man_n speak_v not_o in_o the_o person_n of_o a_o christian_a man_n nor_o of_o a_o simple_a bishop_n but_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o whole_a ecclesiastic_a order_n and_o even_o of_o the_o pope_n himself_o and_o he_o say_v either_o true_a or_o false_a if_o true_a it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o church_n at_o that_o time_n conceive_v that_o they_o have_v no_o temporal_a jurisdiction_n over_o king_n and_o christian_a prince_n no_o not_o for_o heresy_n which_o be_v the_o most_o grievous_a and_o pestilent_a crime_n that_o be_v if_o false_a wherefore_o that_o he_o may_v flatter_v the_o emperor_n very_o like_a how_o then_o can_v he_o thus_o say_v loquebar_fw-la de_fw-la testimonijs_fw-la tuis_fw-la in_o conspectu_fw-la regum_fw-la &_o non_fw-la confundebar_fw-la 118._o or_o because_o he_o know_v not_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o matter_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n sure_o i_o think_v no_o man_n will_v ascribe_v that_o to_o such_o a_o man_n who_o do_v not_o only_o match_v the_o most_o of_o his_o age_n in_o learning_n and_o eloquence_n but_o also_o by_o reason_n of_o his_o year_n exceed_v they_o all_o in_o experience_n who_o have_v often_o be_v present_a at_o counsel_n and_o assembly_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o hear_v their_o judgement_n of_o the_o power_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a what_o be_v there_o determine_v touch_v 〈◊〉_d prince_n and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n over_o they_o i_o add_v also_o that_o which_o pass_v all_o the_o rest_n that_o this_o judgement_n of_o this_o most_o noble_a confessort_n to_o constantius_n be_v commend_v by_o s._n athanasius_n but_o never_o mislike_v by_o any_o of_o the_o holy_a father_n either_o of_o that_o time_n or_o of_o the_o age_n follow_v that_o we_o shall_v just_o conceive_v any_o prejudicate_a opinion_n of_o this_o judgement_n chap._n v._n i_o have_v already_o sufficient_o discourse_v of_o the_o folly_n of_o bozius_n and_o the_o canonist_n who_o affirm_v that_o the_o dominion_n and_o empire_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v give_v to_o the_o pope_n by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n for_o i_o need_v not_o spend_v much_o pain_n in_o resuting_a the_o same_o since_o it_o be_v long_o ago_o hiss_v out_o by_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o the_o divine_n now_o let_v we_o pass_v over_o to_o the_o other_o opinion_n which_o the_o divine_n mislike_v that_o of_o the_o canonist_n have_v substitute_v in_o the_o place_n of_o this_o reject_a fancy_n and_o let_v we_o see_v whether_o it_o agree_v with_o the_o truth_n now_o he_o have_v propound_v it_o thus_o in_o the_o first_o chap._n that_o the_o pope_n have_v temporal_a power_n indirect_o and_o after_o a_o certain_a manner_n that_o be_v in_o respect_n of_o his_o spiritual_a monarchy_n have_v i_o say_v the_o chief_a power_n even_o temporal_a to_o dispose_v of_o the_o temporal_a estate_n of_o all_o christian_n which_o opinion_n if_o it_o be_v true_a whatsoever_o be_v draw_v from_o the_o bishop_n by_o the_o denial_n of_o direct_a power_n the_o same_o be_v large_o restore_v to_o he_o by_o this_o oblique_a and_o indirect_a way_n of_o rule_v but_o i_o be_o afraid_a it_o be_v not_o true_a and_o that_o it_o be_v assaultable_a with_o the_o same_o engine_n wherewith_o that_o opinion_n of_o the_o canonist_n be_v batter_v to_o the_o ground_n for_o the_o divine_n and_o above_o the_o rest_n bellarmine_n learned_o do_v for_o this_o reason_n reprove_v the_o canonist_n opinion_n which_o give_v to_o the_o pope_n the_o dominion_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o to_o king_n and_o secular_a prince_n the_o execution_n only_o and_o that_o commit_v to_o they_o by_o the_o pope_n because_o the_o pope_n themselves_o do_v free_o confess_v as_o be_v express_v in_o diverse_a of_o their_o letter_n that_o temporal_a empire_n and_o kingdom_n be_v give_v to_o prince_n of_o god_n and_o whatsoever_o either_o power_n or_o execution_n king_n and_o emperor_n have_v that_o they_o have_v it_o of_o christ._n from_o whence_o the_o same_o bellarmine_n conclude_v that_o argument_n very_o fine_o against_o the_o canonist_n in_o a_o dilemma_n or_o perplex_a manner_n of_o reason_v 3._o therefore_o i_o ask_v quoth_v he_o either_o the_o pope_n can_v take_v from_o king_n and_o emperor_n this_o execution_n as_o be_v himself_o the_o supreme_a king_n and_o emperor_n or_o he_o can_v if_o he_o can_v therefore_o he_o be_v great_a than_o christ_n if_o he_o can_v not_o therefore_o he_o have_v not_o true_o this_o kingly_a power_n and_o why_o may_v not_o we_o aswell_o use_v a_o argument_n of_o the_o same_o kind_n against_o this_o other_o opinion_n of_o the_o divine_n kingdom_n and_o empire_n be_v give_v by_o god_n as_o many_o holy_a pope_n do_v witness_v for_o which_o cause_n s._n gregory_n in_o a_o certain_a epistle_n to_o mauricius_n the_o emperor_n 31._o begin_v in_o these_o word_n our_o most_o sacred_a lord_n and_o appoint_v of_o god_n and_o in_o another_o to_o constantia_n augusta_n therefore_o your_o piety_n say_v he_o who_o with_o our_o sovereign_a lord_n almighty_a god_n have_v ordain_v to_o govern_v the_o world_n let_v she_o by_o favour_v of_o justice_n return_v her_o service_n to_o he_o of_o who_o she_o receive_v the_o right_n of_o so_o great_a authority_n what_o shall_v i_o use_v many_o word_n the_o scripture_n itself_o witness_v that_o king_n and_o emperor_n receive_v power_n from_o god_n who_o vicegerent_n they_o be_v therein_o as_o say_v lyranus_fw-la upon_o that_o of_o wisdom_n 6._o power_n be_v give_v to_o you_o from_o the_o lord_n and_o virtue_n from_o the_o high_a who_o will_v inquire_v into_o your_o work_n why_o then_o shall_v not_o a_o man_n use_v a_o dilemma_n out_o of_o bellarmine_n against_o bellarmine_n the_o pope_n can_v one_o way_n or_o other_o that_o be_v directly_z or_o indirect_o take_v away_o kingdom_n and_o empire_n from_o king_n and_o emperor_n and_o give_v they_o to_o other_o or_o he_o can_v not_o if_o he_o can_v he_o be_v in_o some_o manner_n great_a than_o god_n because_o he_o take_v away_o that_o which_o god_n have_v give_v for_o one_o that_o be_v less_o or_o equal_a can_v take_v away_o that_o which_o be_v grant_v by_o his_o great_a or_o his_o equal_a nay_o nor_o the_o deputy_n or_o vicar_n of_o he_o who_o grant_v without_o the_o express_a commandment_n of_o the_o lord_n lest_o any_o man_n shall_v lay_v in_o our_o way_n that_o the_o pope_n as_o christ_n vicar_n do_v it_o whereas_o it_o can_v be_v no_o where_o find_v that_o he_o have_v receive_v any_o warrant_n touch_v that_o matter_n either_o express_o or_o by_o implication_n as_o by_o those_o thing_n which_o follow_v will_v easy_o appear_v if_o he_o can_v not_o than_o it_o be_v false_a which_o they_o say_v that_o he_o have_v supreme_a power_n indirect_o to_o dispose_v of_o all_o the_o temporalty_n of_o christian_n and_o to_o depose_v king_n and_o emperor_n from_o their_o throne_n and_o to_o suffect_v other_o in_o their_o place_n i_o will_v they_o will_v consider_v how_o their_o own_o argument_n do_v wring_v they_o and_o not_o this_o only_a but_o also_o another_o of_o great_a force_n which_o we_o report_v above_o out_o of_o the_o same_o book_n and_o
whence_o be_v that_o of_o he_o who_o be_v both_o king_n and_o prophet_n against_o thou_o only_o have_v i_o sin_v and_o afterward_o for_o where_o as_o according_a to_o the_o apostle_n it_o be_v a_o fearful_a thing_n for_o every_o man_n to_o fall_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o live_a god_n yet_o for_o king_n who_o have_v none_o above_o they_o beside_o he_o to_o fear_v it_o will_v be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o fearful_a that_o they_o may_v offend_v more_o free_o than_o other_o i_o can_v call_v in_o more_o and_o that_o very_a many_o to_o testify_v the_o truth_n of_o this_o matter_n but_o what_o need_v any_o more_o in_o the_o mouth_n of_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n let_v every_o word_n stand_v 18._o if_o the_o assertor_n of_o the_o contrary_a opinion_n can_v bring_v forth_o so_o many_o testimony_n of_o ancient_a father_n or_o indeed_o but_o any_o one_o wherein_o it_o be_v express_o write_v that_o the_o church_n or_o the_o supreme_a head_n thereof_o the_o bishop_n have_v temporal_a power_n over_o secular_a king_n and_o prince_n and_o that_o he_o may_v coerce_v and_o chastise_v they_o by_o temporal_a punishment_n any_o way_n either_o direct_o or_o indirect_o or_o inflict_v any_o penalty_n either_o to_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n or_o any_o part_n of_o it_o i_o shall_v be_v content_a that_o the_o whole_a controversy_n shall_v be_v judge_v on_o their_o side_n without_o any_o appeal_n from_o thence_o for_o indeed_o i_o desire_v nothing_o so_o much_o as_o that_o a_o certain_a mean_n may_v be_v find_v by_o which_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o contrary_a side_n may_v be_v clear_o confirm_v but_o while_o i_o expect_v that_o in_o vain_a in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o truth_n carry_v i_o away_o with_o she_o conquer_v and_o bind_v into_o the_o contrary_a part_n therefore_o i_o demand_v this_o now_o of_o the_o adversary_n whether_o it_o be_v likely_a that_o those_o ancient_a and_o holy_a father_n who_o have_v write_v of_o the_o great_a power_n and_o immunity_n of_o king_n and_o emperor_n be_v so_o negligent_a that_o of_o very_a carelessness_n they_o do_v not_o put_v in_o mind_n the_o prince_n of_o their_o time_n of_o this_o temporal_a power_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o that_o they_o leave_v not_o this_o remembrance_n if_o they_o make_v any_o consign_v under_o their_o hand_n in_o writing_n to_o the_o end_n that_o prince_n shall_v fear_v not_o only_o the_o secret_a judgement_n of_o god_n but_o also_o the_o temporal_a jurisdiction_n of_o the_o church_n and_o pope_n by_o which_o they_o may_v be_v throw_v down_o from_o their_o seat_n so_o oft_o as_o the_o church_n or_o the_o pope_n who_o be_v the_o head_n thereof_o shall_v think_v it_o fit_a in_o regard_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o common_a weal_n certain_o to_o be_v silent_a and_o to_o have_v conceal_v so_o great_a a_o matter_n if_o it_o be_v true_a be_v to_o abuse_v king_n and_o prince_n who_o they_o have_v persuade_v both_o by_o write_n and_o preach_n that_o they_o can_v be_v judge_v by_o god_n only_o in_o temporal_a matter_n or_o shall_v we_o imagine_v that_o they_o be_v so_o unskilful_a and_o ignorant_a of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n that_o they_o know_v not_o that_o it_o be_v endue_v with_o such_o a_o power_n or_o in_o a_o word_n that_o they_o be_v so_o fearful_a and_o narrow_a mind_v that_o they_o dare_v not_o tell_v the_o prince_n that_o which_o they_o know_v if_o none_o of_o these_o thing_n can_v be_v impute_v and_o charge_v on_o those_o ancient_a father_n why_o i_o pray_v you_o shall_v we_o now_o embrace_v any_o new_a power_n which_o be_v ground_v upon_o no_o certain_a either_o authority_n or_o reason_n but_o in_o these_o last_o age_n devise_v and_o thrust_v upon_o the_o people_n by_o certain_a fellow_n who_o be_v seru●ly_o and_o base_o addict_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o so_o lie_v a_o new_a and_o strange_a yoke_n upon_o prince_n chap._n ix_o i_o have_v already_o plain_o show_v that_o the_o last_o part_n of_o the_o second_o reason_n of_o the_o adversary_n be_v most_o false_a which_o be_v that_o the_o church_n therefore_o tolerate_v constantius_n julianus_n ualens_n and_o other_o heretic_n prince_n because_o she_o can_v not_o chastise_v they_o without_o the_o hurt_n of_o the_o people_n now_o will_v i_o prove_v that_o the_o latter_a part_n be_v even_o as_o false_a to_o wit_n that_o henry_n the_o iv._o emperor_n and_o other_o prince_n over_o who_o the_o late_a pope_n have_v arrogate_a to_o themselves_o temporal_a power_n may_v be_v coerce_v and_o chastise_v by_o the_o church_n without_o hurt_n of_o the_o people_n which_o before_o that_o i_o take_v in_o hand_n i_o do_v hearty_o request_v not_o only_o the_o friendly_a reader_n but_o even_o the_o adversary_n themselves_o that_o the_o question_n be_v discuss_v they_o will_v weigh_v with_o themselves_o and_o judge_v true_o and_o sincere_o whether_o it_o be_v not_o more_o easy_a for_o the_o church_n to_o punish_v those_o first_o prince_n by_o the_o aforesaid_a way_n and_o mean_n then_o to_o reduce_v into_o order_n the_o say_v henry_n the_o iv_o by_o rodolphus_n the_o swevian_a or_o philip_n the_o fair_a by_o albert_n of_o austria_n of_o who_o the_o one_o scorn_v and_o repress_v the_o arrogancy_n of_o the_o pope_n the_o other_o after_o diverse_a battle_n fight_v with_o diverse_a success_n at_o the_o length_n in_o the_o last_o battle_n defeat_v his_o competitor_n and_o enemy_n who_o the_o pope_n have_v set_v upon_o he_o and_o as_o for_o the_o pope_n of_o who_o alij_fw-la he_o be_v excommunicate_a he_o banish_v he_o out_o of_o rome_n and_o plague_v he_o with_o perpetual_a banishment_n with_o how_o great_a hurt_n and_o spoil_v to_o the_o people_n the_o pope_n labour_v to_o execute_v that_o temporal_a power_n upon_o he●ry_a the_o xii_o o●to_fw-la frisingen_n witness_v who_o bellarmine_n worthy_o call_v most_o noble_a both_o for_o blood_n and_o for_o learning_n and_o for_o integrity_n of_o life●_n who_o write_v of_o the_o excommunication_n 〈◊〉_d and_o deposition_n of_o the_o say_v henry_n do_v by_o gregory_n the_o vii_o in_o this_o manner_n 13._o i_o read_v and_o read_v again_o the_o act_n of_o the_o roman_a king_n and_o emperor_n and_o find_v no_o where_o that_o before_o this_o man_n any_o of_o they_o be_v excommunicate_a or_o deprive_v of_o his_o kingdom_n by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n unless_o any_o man_n think_v it_o be_v to_o be_v account_v for_o a_o excommunication_n that_o philip_n be_v for_o a_o small_a time_n place_v among_o the_o penitentiaries_n by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o theodosius_n be_v ●equestredor_n suspend_v from_o enter_v into_o the_o church_n by_o bless_a ambrose_n for_o his_o bloody_a murder_n in_o which_o place_n it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o otto_n do_v plain_o profess_v that_o he_o find_v in_o former_a age_n no_o example_n of_o privation_n of_o a_o kingdom_n although_o he_o propound_v these_o two_o instance_n touch_v excommunication_n if_o not_o true_a at_o least_o have_v a_o show_n of_o true_a one_o and_o afterward_o within_o a_o few_o line_n he_o write_v thus_o 35._o but_o what_o great_a mischief_n how_o many_o war_n and_o hazard_n of_o war_n follow_v thereof_o how_o oft_o miserable_a rome_n be_v besiege_v take_v spotled_a because_o pope_n be_v set_v up_o again_o pope_n and_o king_n above_o king_n it_o be_v a_o pain_n to_o remember_v to_o be_v short_a the_o rage_n of_o this_o storm_n do_v so_o hurry_v and_o wrap_v within_o it_o so_o many_o mischief_n so_o many_o schism_n so_o many_o danger_n both_o of_o soul_n and_o body_n that_o the_o same_o even_o of_o itself_o by_o reason_n both_o of_o the_o cruelty_n of_o the_o persecution_n and_o the_o continuance_n thereof_o be_v sufficient_a to_o prove_v the_o unhappiness_n of_o man_n misery_n upon_o which_o occasion_n that_o time_n be_v by_o a_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n compare_v to_o the_o thick_a darkness_n of_o egypt_n for_o the_o foresay_a bishop_n gregory_n be_v banish_v the_o cuie_n by_o the_o king_n and_o gibert_n bishop_n of_o ravenna_n be_v thrust_v into_o his_o place_n further_o gregory_n remain_v at_o salernum_n the_o time_n of_o his_o death_n approach_v be_v report_v to_o have_v say_v i_o have_v love_v justice_n and_o hate_v ●_o iniquity_n therefore_o i_o die_v in_o banishment_n therefore_o because_o the_o kingdom_n be_v cut_v off_o by_o the_o church_n be_v grievous_o 〈◊〉_d in_o her_o prince_n the_o church_n also_o bereave_v of_o so_o great_a a_o pastor_n who_o exceed_v all_o the_o priest_n and_o bishop_n of_o roman_a zeal_n and_o authority_n conceive_v no_o small_a grief_n call_v you_o this_o to_o chastise_v a_o prince_n without_o hurt_n to_o the_o people_n they_o that_o write_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o they_o mean_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n do_v not_o tolerate_v this_o emperor_n because_o he_o can_v chastise_v he_o without_o
out_o of_o 〈◊〉_d his_o house_n and_o the_o friend_n of_o the_o emperor_n to_o a●cend_v into_o it_o chap._n x._o no●_n 〈◊〉_d to_o th●_n bishop_n frisingensis_n a_o man_n most_o 〈…〉_z as_o i_o say_v and_o almost_o a_o eye_n witness_n of_o these_o thing_n he_o both_o in_o the_o place_n produce_v by_o we_o and_o also_o in_o other_o bewray_v plain_o that_o he_o allow_v not_o that_o decree_n of_o the_o pope_n touch_v the_o depose_n of_o the_o emperor_n but_o that_o he_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v new_a insolent_a and_o unjust_a for_o first_o for_o the_o novelty_n and_o insolency_n of_o that_o act_n he_o write_v thus_o i_o read_v and_o read_v again_o the_o act_n of_o the_o roman_a king_n and_o emperor_n and_o do_v find_v no_o where_o that_o any_o of_o they_o before_o this_o be_v excommunicate_a or_o deprive_v of_o his_o kingdom_n by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o again_o in_o the_o first_o book_n touch_v the_o gest_n of_o fredrick_n 〈…〉_z gregory_n the_o vii_o say_v he_o who_o then_o hold_v the_o bishopric_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n decree_n that_o the_o emporour_n as_o one_o forsake_v of_o his_o friend_n shall_v be_v shake_v with_o the_o sword_n of_o excommunication_n the_o novelty_n and_o strangeness_n of_o this_o action_n do_v so_o much_o more_o vehement_o affect_v the_o empire_n already_o move_v with_o indignation_n because_o before_o that_o time_n never_o any_o such_o sentence_n be_v know_v to_o have_v be_v publish_v against_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o roman_n now_o he_o declare_v the_o injustice_n and_o iniquity_n of_o the_o fact_n in_o diverse_a respect_n first_o because_o among_o those_o evil_n and_o mischief_n which_o do_v spring_n out_o of_o that_o decree_n of_o the_o pope_n he_o reckon_v the_o mutation_n and_o defection_n both_o of_o pope_n and_o king_n that_o pope_n be_v set_v above_o pope_n as_o king_n above_o king_n by_o which_o word_n he_o show_v that_o both_o of_o they_o by_o a_o like_a right_n or_o ratherby_o a_o like_a wrong_n be_v make_v that_o as_o pope_n be_v set_v upon_o pope_n by_o the_o emperor_n unjust_o so_o also_o be_v king_n unjust_o set_v upon_o king_n by_o the_o pope_n then_o in_o that_o he_o say_v because_o therefore_o the_o kingdom_n in_o his_o prince_n etc._n etc._n what_o do_v that_o imply_v other_o then_o that_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o empire_n violate_v in_o the_o prince_n the_o church_n be_v violate_v in_o the_o bishop_n or_o else_o for_o the_o kingdom_n wound_v in_o the_o prince_n the_o church_n be_v wound_v in_o the_o bishop_n between_o which_o see_v he_o make_v no_o difference_n of_o right_n or_o wrong_n and_o both_o of_o they_o can_v not_o be_v do_v just_o it_o follow_v that_o he_o think_v both_o of_o they_o be_v do_v unjust_o moreover_o he_o call_v as_o well_o the_o defection_n of_o rodolphus_n who_o the_o pope_n have_v create_v emperor_n as_o the_o insurrection_n of_o henry_n his_o son_n of_o the_o excommunicate_a father_n i_o say_v he_o call_v they_o both_o open_o and_o simple_o plain_a rebellion_n which_o sure_o he_o will_v never_o have_v do_v if_o he_o have_v believe_v that_o henry_n be_v lawful_o deprive_v of_o his_o empire_n for_o there_o can_v be_v no_o rebellion_n but_o against_o a_o superior_a and_o therefore_o it_o can_v not_o be_v against_o a_o heretic_n who_o if_o he_o be_v just_o deprive_v and_o depose_v be_v no_o more_o a_o superior_a therefore_o he_o thus_o write_v of_o rodolphus_n 6._o and_o not_o long_o after_o the_o two_o foresay_a captain_n guelfe_n and_o rodolphus_n rebel_a against_o their_o prince_n upon_o what_o occasion_n it_o be_v uncertain_a be_v join_v with_o the_o saxon_n and_o a_o little_a after_o but_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n gregory_n who_o at_o this_o time_n as_o it_o have_v beer_n say_v stir_v up_o prince_n against_o the_o emperor_n write_v his_o letter_n secret_o and_o open_o to_o all_o that_o they_o shall_v create_v a_o other_o emperor_n but_o here_o we_o must_v know_v by_o the_o way_n that_o he_o say_v upon_o what_o occasion_n it_o be_v doubtful_a that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o a_o private_a occasion_n as_o many_o be_v wont_a to_o spring_v between_o a_o king_n and_o his_o noble_n as_o in_o our_o age_n between_o borbonius_n and_o king_n francis_n the_o guise_n and_o henry_n orange_n and_o philip_n for_o each_o of_o they_o both_o guelfo_n and_o rodolphus_n pretend_v a_o public_a occasion_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o furious_a behaviour_n of_o henricus_n and_o also_o for_o that_o he_o be_v excommunicate_a and_o depose_v from_o his_o kingdom_n by_o the_o pope_n as_o write_v albert_n schafnaburgensis_n german_n and_o so_o they_o cover_v private_a hatred_n as_o rebel_n use_v to_o do_v with_o a_o public_a pretence_n but_o touch_v the_o son_n our_o bishop_n frisingensis_n write_v in_o this_o manner_n 8._o afterwards_o again_o in_o the_o year_n follow_v when_o the_o emperor_n celebrate_v the_o nativity_n of_o the_o lord_n at_o moguntia_n henry_n his_o son_n enter_v into_o rebellion_n against_o his_o father_n in_o the_o part_n of_o noricum_n by_o the_o counsel_n of_o theobald_n a_o marquis_n and_o berengarius_fw-la a_o earl_n under_o the_o colour_n of_o religion_n because_o his_o father_n be_v excommunicate_a by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o have_v draw_v to_o his_o party_n certain_a great_a personage_n out_o of_o the_o east_n part_n of_o france_n alemania_n and_o baioaria_n he_o enter_v into_o saxony_n a_o country_n and_o nation_n easy_o to_o be_v animate_v against_o their_o king_n here_o let_v the_o reader_n observe_v two_o thing_n one_o that_o this_o author_n a_o man_n notable_a for_o knowledge_n and_o piety_n call_v this_o insurrection_n of_o henry_n the_o son_n against_o henry_n the_o father_n a_o rebellion_n the_o other_o that_o both_o here_o and_o in_o other_o place_n he_o ever_o call_v henry_n the_o father_n king_n and_o emperor_n although_o he_o have_v be_v now_o about_o five_o and_o twenty_o year_n excommunicate_a and_o deprive_v of_o his_o kingdom_n by_o the_o pope_n sentence_n and_o first_o rodolphus_n and_o then_o 〈◊〉_d be_v set_v into_o his_o place_n by_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o rebel_n whereby_o he_o show_v sufficient_o that_o he_o think_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o authority_n to_o depose_v king_n or_o to_o determine_v of_o their_o temporal_a government_n and_o therefore_o that_o the_o decree_n of_o gregory_n be_v neither_o just_a nor_o lawful_a otherwise_o neither_o henry_n can_v have_v be_v call_v king_n nor_o his_o adversaty_n rebel_n without_o injury_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n there_o be_v also_o another_o place_n of_o the_o same_o author_n wherein_o he_o 〈◊〉_d the_o same_o more_o plain_o that_o be_v that_o the_o pope_n by_o that_o excommunication_n and_o abdication_n have_v take_v no_o right_n of_o his_o kingdom_n from_o henry_n for_o after_o that_o he_o have_v relate_v that_o 〈◊〉_d who_o be_v son_n in_o law_n to_o rodol●us_n who_o as_o have_v be_v say_v the_o pope_n have_v create_v king_n have_v kill_v his_o father_n in_o law_n and_o usurp_v the_o dukedom_n of_o sw●uia_n as_o grant_v to_o he_o by_o his_o father_n in_o law_n and_o one_o the_o other_o side_n that_o henry_n who_o have_v be_v depose_v by_o the_o pope_n sentence_n have_v grant_v the_o same_o dukedom_n to_o a_o certain_a nobleman_n of_o swevia_n who_o name_n be_v fredrick_n who_o force_v bertolphus_n to_o condition_n of_o peace_n &_o ad_fw-la ex_fw-la 〈…〉_z ducaius_n he_o add_v this_o ber●ode_n although_o in_o this_o business_n he_o yield_v both_o to_o the_o empire_n and_o to_o justice_n yet_o he_o be_v report_v to_o have_v be_v a_o re●olute_a and_o a_o valiant_a man_n behold_v how_o he_o use_v no_o manner_n of_o circuition_n affirm_v that_o both_o empire_n and_o justice_n stand_v on_o his_o part_n against_o who_o the_o pope_n have_v long_o before_o pass_v the_o sentence_n of_o deposition_n but_o not_o with_o rodolphus_n be_v call_v to_o the_o kingdom_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n with_o this_o epigraphe_n now_o twice_o relate_v above_o petra_n dedit_fw-la petro_n etc._n etc._n last_o see_v he_o serious_o say_v and_o teach_v that_o king_n have_v none_o above_o they_o but_o god_n who_o they_o may_v fear_v do_v he_o not_o even_o by_o this_o conclusion_n teach_v we_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v no_o temporal_a authority_n whereby_o he_o may_v dispose_v in_o any_o manner_n of_o their_o kingdom_n and_o government_n and_o sure_o although_o there_o be_v nothing_o else_o for_o which_o that_o heinous_a action_n of_o pope_n gregory_n may_v be_v mislike_v sure_o so_o many_o lamentable_a and_o disastrous_a event_n so_o many_o fatal_a and_o woeful_a accident_n which_o spring_v out_o of_o that_o jurisdiction_n which_o be_v then_o first_o usurp_v and_o practise_v by_o the_o pope_n against_o the_o emperor_n afflict_v the_o whole_a empire_n full_a five_o and_o
premise_n because_o if_o the_o pope_n will_v transfer_v any_o kingdom_n from_o one_o to_o another_o he_o may_v say_v that_o he_o judge_v it_o necessary_a for_o the_o health_n of_o soul_n and_o none_o 〈…〉_z of_o have_v judgement_n as_o have_v be_v say_v and_o 〈…〉_z his_o pleasure_n whether_o he_o will_v take_v from_o 〈…〉_z but_o that_o all_o king_n 〈…〉_z th●●_n kingdom_n which_o 〈…〉_z at_o the_o 〈…〉_z behold_v in_o how_o 〈…〉_z christia●_n king_n and_o prince_n shall_v stand_v 〈…〉_z 〈…〉_z that_o the_o pope_n have_v power_n indirect_o to_o 〈…〉_z all_o temporality_n of_o christian_n who_o shall_v mea●●_n t●at_v 〈…〉_z own_o pleasure_n and_o judgement_n that_o 〈…〉_z for_o he_o if_o he_o be_v displease_v then_o to_o 〈…〉_z his_o indirect_a power_n so_o o●t_v 〈…〉_z private_a 〈◊〉_d o●_n the_o ambigu_n 〈…〉_z forward_o or_o even_o 〈…〉_z and_o contemn_a 〈…〉_z where_o of_o ●●●face_v 〈…〉_z have_v give_fw-mi 〈…〉_z all_o of_o i●any_n they_o 〈…〉_z to_o 〈…〉_z mighty_a 〈…〉_z of_o the_o pontifice_n 〈…〉_z and_o 〈…〉_z one_o after_o another_o as_o 〈…〉_z i_o omit_v this_o reason_n take_v 〈…〉_z a●●●ought_v it_o 〈…〉_z for_o that_o 〈…〉_z that_o 〈…〉_z kingdom_n but_o a_o execution_n 〈…〉_z to_o th●m_o by_o the_o pope_n ●●t_n i●_n it_o strange_a against_o the_o 〈…〉_z and_o all_o the_o abettor_n of_o the_o indirect_a power_n 〈…〉_z all_o 〈◊〉_d all_o 〈◊〉_d and_o jurisdiction_n be_v 〈…〉_z by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n o●_n of_o man_n and_o also_o he_o 〈…〉_z o●_n hold_v any_o th●ng_n i●_n he_o hold_v by_o nei●●●●_n 〈…〉_z of_o these_o hold_v wrongful_o as_o augustire_n reason_v 〈…〉_z against_o the_o donatist_n therefore_o it_o can_v be_v that_o the_o pope_n shall_v just_o exercise_v any_o temporal_a jurisdiction_n over_o secular_a king_n and_o prince_n unless_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o same_o be_v give_v he_o either_o by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n or_o of_o man._n but_o neither_o in_o divine_a nor_o humane_a law_n be_v any_o such_o place_n find_v which_o confer_v any_o such_o power_n upon_o he_o whereas_o on_o the_o contrary_a part_n the_o domination_n and_o authority_n of_o king_n be_v open_o commend_v and_o allow_v by_o many_o testimony_n of_o sacred_a scripture_n as_o when_o it_o be_v say_v by_o i_o king_n reign_v all_o power_n be_v give_v to_o you_o the_o king_n of_o the_o nation_n rule_v over_o they_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o king_n be_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n i_o will_v give_v they_o a_o king_n in_o my_o anger_n my_o son_n fear_v the_o lord_n and_o the_o king_n fear_v god_n honour_v the_o king_n and_o every_o where_o the_o like_a speech_n last_o see_v this_o temporal_a power_n and_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o pope_n whereof_o we_o speak_v be_v not_o find_v to_o be_v comprise_v neither_o in_o the_o express_a word_n of_o god_n in_o the_o scripture_n nor_o by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n receive_v as_o it_o be_v by_o hand_n nor_o practise_v by_o use_n and_o custom_n in_o the_o church_n for_o these_o thousand_o year_n and_o more_o or_o exercise_v by_o any_o pope_n nor_o allow_v and_o commend_v nay_o not_o so_o much_o as_o mention_v by_o the_o ancient_a father_n in_o the_o church_n i_o pray_v you_o what_o necessity_n of_o faith_n shall_v force_v we_o to_o admit_v it_o or_o with_o what_o authority_n can_v they_o persuade_v the_o same_o unto_o we_o our_o opinion_n say_v they_o be_v prove_v by_o reason_n and_o example_n how_o glad_a say_v i_o will_v i_o be_v that_o that_o be_v true_a but_o we_o ought_v chief_o to_o know_v this_o that_o only_o those_o reason_n be_v fit_a to_o prove_v this_o opinion_n of_o they_o whereof_o evident_a proof_n and_o demonstration_n be_v make_v which_o none_o of_o they_o have_v hitherto_o bring_v nor_o as_o i_o think_v can_v bring_v for_o as_o touch_v reason_n only_o probable_a and_o likely_a whereof_o dialectike_a syllogism_n do_v consist_v their_o force_n be_v not_o such_o as_o can_v conclude_v and_o give_v away_o from_o king_n and_o prince_n their_o sovereign_a authority_n from_o they_o see_v that_o even_o in_o daily_a brabble_n about_o trifle_a matter_n nothing_o can_v be_v conclude_v unless_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o suitor_n be_v prove_v by_o manifest_a and_o evident_a proof_n and_o witness_n and_o therefore_o the_o actor_n not_o prove_v he_o that_o be_v convent_v although_o himself_o perform_v nothing_o shall_v carry_v the_o business_n probat_fw-la but_o the_o help_n be_v very_o weak_a and_o feeble_a in_o example_n because_o they_o only_o show_v what_o be_v do_v not_o what_o ought_v to_o be_v do_v those_o except_v which_o be_v commend_v or_o dispraise_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o see_v they_o be_v thus_o let_v we_o now_o see_v with_o what_o reason_n the_o adversary_n continue_v their_o opinion_n chap._n xiii_o there_o be_v not_o one_o among_o they_o all_o who_o be_v of_o the_o pope_n party_n as_o i_o say_v before_o who_o have_v either_o gather_v more_o diligent_o or_o propound_v more_o sharp_o or_o conclude_v more_o brief_o and_o 〈◊〉_d than_o the_o worthy_a divine_a bellarmine_n who_o i_o mention_v for_o honour_n sake_n who_o although_o he_o give_v as_o much_o to_o the_o pope_n authority_n in_o temporality_n as_o honest_o he_o may_v and_o more_o than_o he_o ought_v yet_o can_v he_o not_o satisfy_v the_o ambition_n of_o the_o most_o imperious_a man_n sixius_fw-la the_o fist_n who_o affirm_v that_o he_o have_v supreme_a power_n over_o all_o king_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n and_o all_o people_n country_n and_o nation_n commit_v unto_o he_o not_o by_o humane_a but_o by_o divine_a ordinance_n rege●_n and_o therefore_o he_o be_v very_o near_o by_o his_o pontificial_a censure_n to_o the_o great_a hurt_n of_o the_o church_n to_o have_v abolish_v all_o the_o write_n of_o that_o doctor_n which_o do_v oppugn_v heresy_n with_o great_a reader_n success_n at_o this_o day_n as_o the_o father_n of_o that_o order_n whereof_o bellarmine_n be_v then_o do_v serious_o report_v to_o i_o which_o matter_n comfort_v i_o if_o peradventure_o that_o which_o i_o will_v not_o any_o pope_n possess_v with_o the_o like_a ambition_n shall_v for_o the_o like_a cause_n forbid_v catholic_n to_o read_v my_o book_n let_v he_o do_v what_o he_o will_v but_o he_o shall_v never_o bring_v to_o pass_v that_o i_o ever_o forsake_v the_o catholic_a apostolic_a and_o romish_a faith_n wherein_o i_o have_v live_v from_o a_o child_n to_o this_o great_a age_n or_o die_v in_o another_o profession_n of_o faith_n than_o which_o be_v prescribe_v by_o pius_n the_o 4._o we_o will_v then_o bring_v their_o reason_n hither_o out_o of_o bellarmine_n for_o they_o be_v five_o in_o number_n leave_v other_o especial_o bozius_n his_o fancy_n which_o be_v unworthy_a that_o a_o man_n of_o learning_n shall_v trouble_v himself_o to_o refute_v the_o first_o reason_n be_v which_o bellarmine_n propound_v in_o these_o word_n the_o civil_a power_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o spiritual_a power_n when_o each_o of_o they_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a commonwealth_n therefore_o a_o spiritual_a prince_n may_v command_v over_o temporal_a prince_n and_o dispose_n of_o temporal_a matter_n in_o order_n to_o a_o spiritual_a good_a for_o every_o superior_a may_v command_v his_o inferior_a and_o lest_o any_o peradventure_o elude_v this_o reason_n by_o deny_v the_o proposition_n with_o the_o next_o he_o labour_v to_o strengthen_v the_o same_o by_o three_o reason_n or_o media_n as_o they_o call_v they_o now_o that_o civil_a power_n not_o only_o as_o christian_a but_o also_o as_o civil_a be_v subject_a to_o the_o ecclesiastike_a as_o it_o be_v such_o first_o it_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o end_n of_o they_o both_o for_o the_o temporal_a end_n be_v subordinate_a to_o the_o spiritual_a end_n as_o it_o appear_v because_o temporal_a felicity_n be_v not_o absolute_o the_o last_o end_n and_o therefore_o aught_o to_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o felicity_n eternal_a now_o it_o be_v plain_a out_o of_o aristotle_n lib._n 1._o eth._n cap._n 1._o that_o the_o faculty_n be_v so_o subordinate_a as_o the_o end_n be_v subordinate_a second_o king_n and_o bishop_n clergy_n and_o laity_n do_v not_o make_v two_o common_a wealth_n but_o one_o that_o be_v one_o church_n for_o we_o be_v all_o one_o body_n rom._n 11._o and_o 1_o corinth_n 12._o but_o in_o every_o body_n the_o member_n be_v connex_v and_o depend_v one_o of_o another_o but_o it_o be_v no_o right_a assertion_n that_o spiritual_a thing_n depend_v on_o temporal_a therefore_o temporal_a thing_n depend_v of_o spiritual_a and_o be_v subject_a to_o they_o three_o if_o a_o temporal_a administration_n hinder_v a_o spiritual_a good_a in_o all_o man_n judgement_n the_o temporal_a prince_n be_v bind_v to_o change_v that_o manner_n of_o government_n yea_o even_o with_o the_o loss_n of_o a_o temporal_a good_a therefore_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n
aspire_v to_o eternal_a happiness_n it_o have_v not_o that_o of_o herself_o not_o i_o say_v so_o far_o as_o it_o be_v politic_a do_v she_o direct_v her_o endeavour_n thither_o as_o to_o her_o last_o scope_n but_o in_o respect_n that_o she_o be_v spiritual_a or_o else_o be_v further_v by_o the_o society_n and_o counsel_n of_o the_o ecclesiastike_a power_n as_o appear_v by_o innumerable_a both_o people_n and_o city_n in_o who_o the_o civil_a power_n be_v strong_a and_o powerful_a by_o severity_n of_o law_n although_o they_o have_v very_o slender_a or_o no_o notion_n at_o all_o of_o this_o everlasting_a happiness_n whereof_o we_o speak_v this_o also_o the_o apostle_n declare_v titu_fw-la when_o he_o will_n we_o to_o pray_v for_o king_n and_o all_o that_o be_v in_o authority_n that_o we_o may_v live_v a_o peaceable_a life_n in_o all_o piety_n and_o chastity_n ascribe_v peace_n and_o tranquillity_n of_o life_n to_o the_o politic_a government_n but_o piety_n and_o chastity_n to_o christian_a discipline_n therefore_o to_o speak_v in_o one_o word_n we_o must_v know_v that_o the_o end_n of_o humane_a action_n be_v in_o the_o intention_n and_o not_o in_o the_o understanding_n that_o be_v to_o say_v not_o that_o which_o the_o understanding_n can_v invent_v by_o discourse_n of_o reason_n be_v the_o end_n of_o the_o action_n but_o that_o which_o the_o will_n do_v desire_n to_o attain_v by_o do_v while_o the_o mind_n meditate_v on_o the_o action_n that_o be_v the_o end_n of_o action_n whence_o navarrus_n say_v very_o well_o 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o end_n of_o the_o like_fw-mi power_n be_v the_o good_a happy_a and_o quiet_a temporal_a life_n of_o man_n which_o also_o be_v the_o end_n of_o the_o law_n which_o proceed_v from_o the_o same_o and_o that_o the_o end_n of_o the_o ecclesiastike_a power_n be_v a_o everlasting_a supernatural_a life_n and_o that_o the_o same_o be_v the_o end_n of_o the_o law_n which_o proceed_v from_o she_o i_o will_v prosecute_v this_o further_a but_o that_o i_o think_v that_o the_o matter_n be_v plain_a enough_o to_o man_n of_o wit_n even_o by_o philosophy_n itself_o but_o the_o second_o reason_n be_v so_o frivolous_a and_o captious_a as_o nothing_o can_v be_v speak_v more_o fond_o or_o be_v gather_v more_o unsound_o for_o be_v there_o any_o old_a wife_n so_o dote_v as_o understand_v not_o the_o weakness_n of_o this_o consecution_n they_o be_v member_n of_o one_o body_n therefore_o one_o depend_v of_o another_o for_o neither_o do_v a_o foot_n depend_v of_o a_o foot_n nor_o a_o arm_n of_o a_o arm_n nor_o a_o shoulder_n of_o a_o shoulder_n but_o they_o be_v join_v to_o some_o three_o and_o middle_a member_n by_o themselves_o or_o by_o other_o member_n to_o which_o they_o adhere_v and_o be_v it_o not_o gather_v by_o the_o same_o manner_n of_o reason_v and_o by_o the_o same_o argument_n plain_o the_o arm_n of_o every_o man_n be_v member_n of_o one_o body_n but_o in_o every_o body_n the_o member_n be_v connex_v and_o depend_v one_o ●●_o another_o but_o it_o be_v not_o right_o affirm_v that_o the_o right_n depend_v of_o the_o left_a ergo_fw-la the_o left_a arm_n of_o every_o man_n depend_v of_o the_o right_n and_o be_v subject_a to_o it_o who_o will_v not_o laugh_v at_o such_o kind_n of_o argument_n so_o full_a of_o vanity_n i_o hate_v those_o miserable_a demonstration_n which_o do_v rather_o inwrap_v and_o enfold_v the_o matter_n they_o have_v in_o hand_n with_o qu●●ckes_n illusion_n and_o captious_a sophistication_n then_o explain_v the_o same_o for_o as_o the_o arm_n be_v knit_v to_o the_o shoulder_n and_o the_o shoulder_n be_v knit_v to_o the_o neck_n and_o head_n nor_o the_o right_a arm_n or_o the_o right_a shoulder_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o left_a or_o contrary_o so_o the_o power_n spiritual_a and_o temporal_a or_o ecclesiastike_a and_o politic_a although_o they_o be_v member_n of_o one_o politic_a body_n and_o part_n of_o one_o christian_a commonweal_n and_o church_n yet_o neither_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o other_o and_o neither_o can_v without_o great_a sin_n press_v and_o encroach_v upon_o the_o border_n and_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o other_o but_o both_o as_o it_o be_v the_o shoulder_n of_o one_o body_n be_v knit_v to_o the_o head_n which_o be_v christ._n whereof_o this_o i_o mean_v the_o politic_a prescribe_v to_o the_o citizen_n and_o subject_n the_o precept_n of_o live_v wherein_o the_o peace_n and_o tranquillity_n of_o humane_a society_n be_v maintain_v and_o the_o other_o raise_v and_o instruct_v man_n mind_n to_o the_o supernatural_a contemplation_n of_o immortality_n and_o eternal_a happiness_n which_o do_v subsist_v with_o civil_a tranquillity_n and_o sometime_o without_o it_o whereof_o it_o follow_v that_o these_o power_n be_v divide_v and_o sever_v in_o the_o same_o christian_a commonweal_n so_o as_o neither_o can_v be_v subject_a to_o other_o so_o fair_a forth_o as_o it_o be_v such_o and_o sure_o unless_o bellarmine_n confess_v this_o he_o will_v be_v convince_v by_o his_o own_o doctrine_n deliver_v other_o where_o for_o in_o his_o three_o book_n de_fw-fr rom._n pontif._n c._n 19_o where_o he_o consute_v the_o trifle_n of_o the_o smalchaldike_n synod_n of_o the_o lutheran_n and_o answer_n to_o that_o argument_n of_o they_o wherein_o they_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n make_v himself_o god_n see_v he_o will_v not_o be_v in_o age_a by_o the_o church_n nor_o by_o any_o man_n he_o show_v that_o the_o consequence_n be_v saulty_a in_o a_o argument_n draw_v from_o king_n who_o also_o themselves_o have_v no_o judge_n in_o earth_n as_o concern_v temporalty_n the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n say_v he_o certain_o acknowledge_v no_o judge_n in_o earth_n in_o the_o point_n which_o appertain_v to_o politic_a matter_n shall_v there_o be_v therefore_o as_o many_o god_n as_o there_o be_v king_n what_o other_o thing_n be_v it_o i_o pray_v you_o that_o king_n have_v no_o judge_n in_o earth_n as_o concern_v politic_a matter_n then_o that_o which_o we_o will_v prove_v that_o the_o politic_a power_n be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o ecclesiastike_a and_o that_o the_o pope_n can_v by_o no_o mean_n dispose_v and_o judge_v of_o the_o same_o for_o if_o he_o can_v sure_o either_o king_n shall_v have_v a_o judge_n in_o earth_n even_o as_o touch_v politic_a matter_n or_o the_o pope_n must_v always_o dwell_v in_o heaven_n therefore_o it_o can_v be_v but_o that_o bellarmine_n either_o disagree_v from_o himself_o or_o that_o he_o have_v slip_v for_o want_n of_o memory_n or_o that_o which_o i_o believe_v not_o that_o he_o desire_v to_o vary_v and_o change_v the_o truth_n when_o as_o in_o one_o place_n he_o affirm_v for_o certain_a and_o grant_v that_o king_n have_v no_o judge_n in_o earth_n as_o concern_v politic_a matter_n and_o in_o another_o place_n he_o set_v the_o pope_n as_o judge_v over_o all_o king_n and_o prince_n who_o may_v judge_v and_o depose_v they_o and_o at_o his_o pleasure_n dispose_v of_o all_o their_o kingdom_n and_o estate_n for_o whereas_o he_o make_v the_o distinction_n in_o these_o word_n direct_o and_o indirect_o that_o belong_v only_o to_o the_o form_n and_o manner_n of_o proceed_v but_o not_o to_o the_o force_n and_o work_n of_o the_o judgement_n for_o it_o be_v ever_o true_a that_o he_o have_v a_o judge_n in_o earth_n as_o concern_v temporalty_n who_o the_o pope_n judge_v in_o temporalty_n what_o way_n soever_o either_o direct_o or_o indirect_o and_o i_o pray_v you_o what_o odds_n be_v there_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o misery_n and_o calamity_n of_o a_o king_n that_o be_v judge_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o deprive_v of_o his_o kingdom_n whether_o the_o pope_n have_v do_v it_o direct_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v give_v sentence_n upon_o the_o king_n of_o sicily_n or_o naples_n as_o the_o direct_a lord_n of_o the_o fee_n upon_o his_o vassal_n or_o h●th_v do●●●t_o indirect_o as_o upon_o other_o king_n who_o be_v 〈◊〉_d subject_n to_o he_o by_o any_o ch●ntelar_a law_n it_o so_o be_v a_o like_a 〈…〉_z both_o the_o judgement_n and_o this_o be_v suffi_fw-la 〈…〉_z argument_n no_o let_v we_o examine_v what_o 〈…〉_z 〈…〉_z be_v plain_o even_o 〈…〉_z ●●thered_a thereof_o by_o the_o au_o 〈…〉_z ●temporall_a power_n be_v subject_a to_o 〈…〉_z to_o prove_v a_o matter_n by_o daemon_n 〈…〉_z br_v soo●th_v a_o sig●e_n and_o that_o sure_o 〈…〉_z which_o many_o time_n de●●●ues_v we_o by_o a_o 〈…〉_z ●herefore_o i_o answer_v to_o the_o argument_n by_o de_fw-fr 〈…〉_z for_o although_o it_o be_v true_a that_o a_o tem_n 〈…〉_z ●●und_v to_o change_v the_o manner_n of_o his_o go_v 〈…〉_z ●●●●●tuall_a good_a be_v ●●●dred_v thereby_o ●et_o be_v it_o 〈…〉_z by_o a_o necessary_a consequence_n that_o the_o 〈…〉_z to_o the_o sp●●●tuall_a but_o this_o onel●_n that_o a_o ●●●●●tuall_a good_a be_v mor●_n excellent_a than_o a_o temporal_a good_a the_o which_o be_v true_a
list_v the_o annal_n and_o record_n of_o all_o nation_n let_v he_o read_v through_o all_o scripture_n and_o story_n he_o shall_v find_v among_o they_o no_o one_o step_n whereby_o it_o may_v be_v gather_v that_o those_o christian_n prince_n when_o they_o give_v their_o name_n to_o the_o church_n do_v submit_v their_o sceptre_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o do_v special_o and_o by_o name_n a_o bandon_v their_o sovereign_a temporal_a magistracy_n but_o it_o must_v appear_v that_o prince_n witting_o and_o know_o do_v descend_v and_o give_v themselves_o into_o the_o dition_z and_o authority_n temporal_a of_o the_o pope_n or_o we_o must_v confess_v that_o as_o much_o as_o concern_v regal_a dignity_n they_o remain_v after_o baptism_n in_o the_o same_o power_n and_o condition_n wherein_o they_o be_v before_o they_o receive_v holy_a imitation_n of_o christianity_n for_o as_o he_o witness_v himself_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n deprive_v no_o man_n of_o his_o right_n and_o peculiar_a fee._n but_o before_o they_o give_v their_o name_n to_o christ_n of_o right_a and_o in_o fact_n as_o he_o say_v they_o exercise_v civil_a authority_n over_o the_o pope_n and_o may_v lawful_o judge_v he_o in_o temporal_a case_n therefore_o they_o may_v likewise_o do_v it_o lawful_o after_o baptism_n which_o if_o it_o be_v so_o it_o can_v be_v by_o any_o mean_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v judge_v by_o he_o in_o temporal_a matter_n see_v it_o be_v impossible_a that_o any_o man_n shall_v be_v superior_a and_o inferior_a in_o the_o same_o kind_n of_o authority_n and_o in_o respect_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n it_o be_v true_a that_o those_o christian_n prince_n for_o the_o reverence_n they_o bear_v not_o only_o to_o the_o pope_n but_o also_o to_o all_o other_o bishop_n yea_o and_o priest_n also_o do_v very_o seldom_o put_v that_o judgement_n in_o practice_n but_o this_o argue_v a_o want_n of_o will_v only_o and_o not_o of_o power_n also_o wherefore_o as_o a_o consul_n or_o precedent_n when_o he_o yield_v himself_o to_o adoption_n transfer_v none_o of_o those_o right_n which_o belong_v to_o he_o by_o his_o office_n into_o the_o family_n and_o power_n of_o his_o adoptive_a father_n neither_o can_v transfer_v they_o but_o reserve_v they_o all_o entire_o to_o himself_o so_o prince_n in_o the_o beginning_n have_v deliver_v themselves_o into_o the_o spiritual_a adoption_n of_o the_o ecclesiastike_a hierarchy_n can_v by_o that_o act_n lose_v none_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o right_n of_o a_o kingdom_n and_o their_o public_a civil_a estate_n for_o that_o the_o nature_n of_o these_o power_n be_v divide_v so_o as_o although_o be_v yoke_v and_o couple_v together_o they_o do_v very_a htlv_n and_o handsome_o frame_v together_o in_o the_o same_o christian_n commonwealth_n yet_o neither_o of_o they_o as_o it_o be_v such_o be_v subject_a or_o master_n to_o the_o other_o and_o neither_o do_v necessary_o follow_v and_o accompany_v the_o other_o but_o each_o may_v be_v both_o obtain_v and_o also_o lose_v or_o keep_v without_o the_o other_o but_o now_o because_o the_o learned_a bellarmine_n be_v very_o much_o delight_v with_o similitude_n and_o beside_o prove_v thy_o common_a opinion_n the_o indirect_a a_o potestate_fw-la temporal_n summ●_n pontificis_fw-la by_o no_o testimony_n either_o of_o scripture_n or_o of_o ancient_a father_n but_o only_o by_o certain_a reason_n fetch_v a_o simili_fw-la a_o very_a poor_a and_o weak_a foundation_n to_o build_v a_o demonstration_n upon_o i_o think_v i_o shall_v not_o do_v amiss_o by_o a_o similitude_n of_o much_o more_o fitness_n to_o confirm_v also_o our_o opinion_n of_o this_o matter_n the_o son_n of_o the_o family_n although_o he_o go_v to_o war_n and_o bear_v public_a office_n and_o charge_n be_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o man_n subject_n to_o his_o father_n in_o who_o sacred_a household_n power_n he_o be_v yet_o abide_v 3._o and_o again_o the_o father_n who_o have_v this_o power_n over_o his_o son_n be_v subject_a to_o his_o son_n as_o a_o magistrate_n but_o 〈◊〉_d another_o kind_n of_o power_n for_o the_o one_o as_o he_o be_v a_o parent_n challenge_v authority_n over_o his_o son_n whereby_o he_o may_v correct_v chastise_v and_o punish_v he_o offend_v and_o commit_v any_o thing_n against_o the_o law_n of_o the_o family_n or_o practise_v any_o thing_n against_o himself_o or_o otherwise_o do_v that_o which_o be_v unworthy_a and_o unfitting_a a_o good_a son_n not_o by_o the_o right_n of_o a_o magistrate_n but_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o his_o fatherly_a power_n and_o not_o with_o every_o kind_n of_o punishment_n but_o only_o with_o certain_a which_o be_v allow_v by_o the_o law_n therefore_o if_o his_o son_n deserve_v ill_a he_o may_v disherit_v he_o cast_v he_o out_o of_o the_o house_n deprive_v he_o of_o the_o right_n of_o the_o family_n and_o kindred_n and_o chastise_v he_o with_o other_o domestical_a remedy_n 〈…〉_z but_o he_o can_v not_o disannul_v his_o magistracy_n nor_o take_v from_o he_o his_o good_n in_o the_o camp_n nor_o condemn_v he_o by_o a_o public_a judgement_n neither_o inflict_v any_o other_o mulct_n or_o pain_n due_a for_o his_o fault_n by_o the_o law_n either_o direct_o or_o indirect_o because_o this_o course_n exceed_v the_o measure_n and_o jurisdiction_n of_o a_o fatherly_a power_n but_o the_o other_o although_o a_o son_n and_o oblige_v by_o the_o father_n bond_n yet_o as_o he_o be_v a_o magistrate_n in_o public_a authority_n rule_v over_o his_o father_n and_o in_o public_a affair_n and_o even_o in_o private_a so_o be_v it_o they_o be_v not_o domestical_a may_v command_v he_o as_o well_o as_o other_o citizen_n 〈…〉_z if_o there_o be_v a_o son_n of_o a_o family_n say_v ulpian_n and_o bear_v a_o office_n he_o may_v constrain_v his_o father_n in_o who_o power_n he_o be_v suspectum_fw-la dicentem_fw-la haereditatem_fw-la adire_fw-la &_o restituer_n from_o hence_o if_o the_o son_n of_o the_o family_n be_v consul_n or_o precedent_n he_o may_v either_o be_v emancipate_v or_o give_v into_o adoption_n before_o himself_o adopt_v for_o which_o cause_n the_o father_n be_v no_o less_o bind_v than_o if_o he_o be_v a_o stranger_n not_o only_o to_o obey_v his_o son_n be_v in_o office_n but_o also_o to_o rise_v to_o he_o and_o to_o honour_v he_o with_o all_o the_o respect_n and_o honour_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o magistrate_n 2._o in_o the_o very_a same_o manner_n the_o pope_n who_o be_v the_o spiritual_a father_n of_o all_o christian_n by_o his_o fatherly_a ecclesiastike_a power_n as_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n do_v command_v king_n and_o prince_n as_o well_o as_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o faithful_a and_o in_o that_o respect_n if_o king_n commit_v any_o thing_n against_o god_n or_o the_o church_n he_o may_v sharp_o chastise_v they_o with_o spiritual_a punishment_n cast_v they_o out_o of_o the_o house_n and_o family_n of_o god_n and_o disinherit_v they_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n most_o fearful_a and_o terrible_a punishment_n for_o christian_n heart_n to_o think_v on_o because_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v proper_a to_o his_o fatherly_a power_n spiritual_a but_o neither_o can_v he_o take_v from_o they_o temporal_a principality_n and_o domination_n nor_o inflict_v civil_a punishment_n upon_o they_o because_o he_o have_v obtain_v no_o civil_a and_o temporal_a jurisdiction_n over_o they_o by_o which_o such_o manner_n of_o chastisement_n ought_v to_o be_v exercise_v as_o also_o for_o that_o the_o fatherly_a power_n spiritual_a wherewith_o the_o pope_n be_v furnish_v be_v very_o far_o divide_v from_o the_o civil_a and_o temporal_a in_o end_n office_n and_o even_o in_o person_n also_o for_o god_n as_o he_o have_v commit_v spiritual_a power_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o other_o priest_n so_o also_o have_v he_o give_v the_o civil_a by_o a_o everlasting_a 〈◊〉_d tion_n to_o the_o king_n and_o the_o magistrate_n which_o be_v under_o he_o there_o be_v no_o power_n but_o of_o god_n 13._o to_o this_o place_n belong_v that_o ancient_a gloss_n which_o the_o cardinal_n of_o cusa_n 3._o write_v that_o it_o be_v assure_v to_o the_o canon_n hadrianus_n papa_n 63._o in_o which_o canon_n it_o be_v deliver_v that_o the_o pope_n with_o the_o whole_a synod_n grant_v to_o charles_n the_o great_a the_o honour_n of_o the_o patriciate_n for_o the_o gloss_n say_v that_o a_o patrician_n be_v a_o father_n to_o the_o pope_n in_o temporality_n as_o the_o pope_n be_v his_o father_n in_o spirituality_n and_o the_o same_o cardinal_n in_o the_o same_o book_n speak_v of_o the_o electer_n of_o the_o 4._o german_a emperor_n from_o whence_o the_o elector_n say_v he_o who_o in_o the_o time_n of_o henry_n the_o second_o be_v appoint_v by_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o all_o the_o almain_n and_o other_o who_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o empire_n have_v a_o radical_a power_n from_o that_o common_a consent_n
have_v choose_v the_o weak_a thing_n of_o the_o world_n to_o confound_v the_o strong_a 1._o know_v that_o his_o church_n only_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o spiritual_a arm_n do_v so_o from_o the_o beginning_n furnish_v she_o with_o they_o that_o she_o overcome_v all_o humane_a power_n and_o might_n so_o as_o it_o may_v be_v say_v true_o a_o domino_fw-la factum_fw-la est_fw-la illud_fw-la &_o est_fw-la mirabile_fw-la in_o oculis_fw-la nostris_fw-la 117._o s._n bernard_n write_v excellent_o as_o he_o do_v always_o to_o eugenius_n the_o pope_n 3._o this_o be_v peter_n who_o be_v not_o at_o any_o time_n know_v to_o walk_v clad_v in_o silk_n or_o adorn_v with_o precious_a stone_n not_o cover_v with_o gold_n nor_o carry_v on_o a_o white_a steed_n nor_o wait_v on_o with_o a_o guard_n of_o soldier_n nor_o compass_v with_o troop_n of_o servant_n attend_v on_o he_o and_o yet_o he_o think_v that_o without_o these_o that_o wholesome_a commandment_n may_v be_v discharge_v siamas_n i_o pasce_fw-la oves_fw-la meas_fw-la herein_o thou_o have_v succeed_v not_o to_o peter_n but_o to_o constantine_n therefore_o although_o the_o temporal_a power_n whereof_o we_o speak_v may_v seem_v to_o man_n to_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o church_n yet_o to_o god_n it_o seem_v neither_o necessary_a nor_o profitable_a peradventure_o for_o that_o reason_n which_o the_o success_n of_o matter_n and_o experience_n itself_o have_v teach_v the_o posterity_n lest_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n trust_v on_o humane_a authority_n shall_v more_o negligent_o intend_v spiritual_a matter_n and_o shall_v chief_o place_v their_o hope_n in_o arm_n and_o in_o a_o temporal_a authority_n and_o might_n which_o they_o ought_v to_o settle_v in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o in_o his_o singular_a help_n and_o indeed_o if_o a_o man_n will_v take_v a_o view_n in_o story_n of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n from_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n to_o this_o day_n he_o shall_v see_v altogether_o that_o she_o grow_v very_o soon_o and_o flourish_v very_o long_o under_o bishop_n that_o be_v content_a with_o their_o own_o authority_n that_o be_v with_o spiritual_a jurisdiction_n who_o be_v the_o disciple_n of_o the_o humility_n of_o christ_n judge_v that_o the_o only_a strength_n to_o defend_v the_o church_n do_v consist_v in_o the_o power_n of_o preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o the_o diligent_a observation_n of_o ecclesiastike_a discipline_n without_o any_o mention_n of_o temporal_a power_n and_o again_o ●●om_a the_o time_n that_o certain_a pope_n go_v about_o to_o annex_v and_o adjoine_v a_o sovereign_a temporal_a government_n to_o that_o spiritual_a sovereignty_n which_o they_o have_v that_o the_o church_n decase_v every_o day_n both_o in_o the_o number_n of_o believer_n and_o behaviour_n and_o virtue_n of_o governor_n and_o that_o same_o severity_n of_o the_o ancient_a discipline_n be_v either_o remit_v or_o to_o speak_v more_o true_o be_v omit_v that_o many_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n discharge_v their_o place_n more_o slothful_o and_o careless_o then_o before_o i_o omit_v that_o if_o these_o man_n reason_n be_v good_a it_o will_v follow_v by_o contrary_n that_o the_o temporal_a common_a wealth_n as_o they_o speak_v have_v power_n to_o dispose_v of_o spiritual_a matter_n and_o to_o depose_v the_o sovereign_a prince_n of_o the_o ecclesiastike_a common_a wealth_n because_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v perfect_a and_o sufficient_a in_o itself_o in_o order_n to_o her_o end_n and_o to_o have_v all_o power_n necessary_a to_o attain_v to_o her_o end_n but_o the_o power_n to_o dispose_v of_o spiritual_a matter_n and_o to_o depose_v the_o prince_n ecclesiastike_a be_v necessary_a to_o the_o temporal_a end_n because_o otherwise_o wicked_a ecclesiastical_a prince_n may_v trouble_v the_o state_n and_o quiet_a of_o a_o temporal_a common_a wealth_n and_o hinder_v the_o end_n of_o the_o civil_a government_n as_o indeed_o diverse_a pope_n have_v be_v cause_n of_o much_o unquietness_n therefore_o the_o temporal_a commonwealth_n have_v this_o power_n the_o consecution_n be_v utter_o false_a and_o absurd_a for_o a_o temporal_a prince_n as_o he_o be_v such_o a_o one_o have_v no_o spiritual_a power_n and_o therefore_o the_o other_o be_v false_a too_o to_o which_o this_o by_o analogy_n be_v a_o consequent_a but_o as_o we_o use_v to_o speak_v dare_v absurdum_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la soluere_fw-la argumentum_fw-la therefore_o i_o do_v answer_v otherwise_o to_o the_o former_a part_n of_o this_o second_o reason_n that_o here_o be_v not_o two_o common_a weal_n as_o he_o suppose_v but_o one_o only_o wherein_o there_o be_v two_o power_n or_o two_o magistrate_n the_o ecclesiastike_a and_o the_o politic_a whereof_o each_o have_v those_o thing_n which_o he_o do_v of_o necessity_n require_v to_o attain_v his_o end_n the_o one_o his_o spiritual_a the_o other_o his_o temporal_a jurisdiction_n and_o that_o neither_o this_o jurisdiction_n be_v necessary_a to_o that_o power_n nor_o that_o for_o this_o otherwise_o we_o must_v confess_v that_o each_o power_n be_v destitute_a of_o her_o necessary_a mean_n than_o when_o they_o be_v sever_v as_o sometime_o they_o be_v which_o i_o have_v already_o show_v to_o be_v very_o false_a as_o well_o out_o of_o the_o end_n of_o the_o temporal_a or_o civil_a government_n at_o it_o be_v such_o 14._o as_o by_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n be_v establish_v under_o heathen_a and_o infidel_n prince_n capite_fw-la according_a to_o this_o manner_n in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o civil_a policy_n i_o mean_v in_o one_o city_n or_o kingdom_n many_o magistrate_n be_v find_v invest_v with_o diverse_a office_n power_n and_o authority_n who_o govern_v the_o common_a weal_n commit_v to_o they_o in_o part_n every_o one_o of_o who_o receive_v from_o the_o king_n or_o common_a wealth_n necessary_a power_n to_o attain_v the_o end_n of_o their_o charge_n so_o as_o none_o of_o they_o may_v or_o dare_v invade_v and_o arrogate_v to_o themselves_o the_o jurisdiction_n and_o rule_n of_o a_o other_o if_o the_o consul_n want_v any_o part_n of_o the_o tribune_n power_n or_o the_o tribune_n any_o of_o the_o consular_a jurisdiction_n it_o can_v not_o be_v say_v therefore_o that_o both_o have_v need_n of_o a_o other_o power_n to_o compass_v their_o end_n for_o each_o office_n according_a to_o the_o ground_n of_o the_o first_o institution_n be_v perfect_a and_o furnish_v with_o all_o necessary_a authority_n for_o the_o execution_n of_o his_o charge_n or_o to_o bring_v forth_o more_o know_v example_n as_o in_o one_o kingdom_n and_o under_o one_o king_n there_o be_v two_o great_a office_n whereof_o the_o one_o the_o chancellor_n the_o other_o the_o constable_n have_v by_o commission_n from_o the_o king_n the_o one_o have_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o special_a charge_n of_o the_o law_n and_o justice_n the_o other_o the_o manage_n of_o arm_n and_o the_o government_n of_o all_o military_a discipline_n commit_v to_o he_o and_o each_o of_o they_o according_a to_o the_o quality_n and_o condition_n of_o his_o office_n be_v absolute_a and_o receive_v from_o the_o king_n all_o authority_n necessary_a for_o the_o execution_n of_o his_o charge_n and_o the_o compass_v of_o his_o end_n neither_o if_o peradventure_o one_o of_o they_o either_o of_o negligence_n or_o injury_n do_v hinder_v the_o course_n of_o the_o other_o may_v he_o that_o be_v so_o hinder_v by_o his_o proper_a authority_n disannul_v his_o office_n or_o usurp_v his_o jurisdiction_n or_o to_o be_v short_a enforce_v he_o to_o amend_v his_o fault_n but_o by_o lawful_a mean_n grant_v he_o by_o commission_n from_o the_o king_n but_o it_o be_v requisite_a that_o each_o complain_v to_o the_o king_n of_o other_o abuse_n of_o who_o they_o have_v receive_v their_o authority_n so_o distinguish_v in_o office_n and_o function_n that_o he_o may_v right_v he_o that_o be_v wrong_v and_o determine_v by_o his_o own_o power_n and_o judgement_n the_o division_n of_o the_o whole_a cause_n now_o so_o long_o as_o these_o officer_n do_v agree_v in_o the_o kingdom_n the_o one_o maintain_v a_o other_o authority_n and_o use_v of_o his_o own_o to_o supply_v that_o which_o be_v want_v in_o the_o other_o but_o if_o a_o countryman_n to_o avoid_v judgement_n of_o law_n do_v depart_v into_o the_o camp_n to_o the_o army_n the_o aid_n of_o the_o marshal_n at_o arm_n be_v require_v he_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v send_v back_o to_o the_o place_n from_o whence_o he_o flee_v and_o of_o the_o contrary_a if_o one_o that_o forsake_v his_o colour_n shall_v slip_v into_o the_o city_n the_o city_n magistrate_n be_v request_v by_o the_o magistrate_n at_o arm_n will_v by_o and_o by_o see_v he_o convey_v to_o the_o camp_n to_o be_v punish_v for_o his_o misdemeanour_n but_o where_o they_o do_v disagree_v they_o give_v those_o wound_n to_o the_o commonwealth_n which_o the_o prince_n only_o can_v help_v and_o cure_v because_o
a_o kingdom_n forfeit_v they_o have_v he_o only_o their_o judge_n and_o not_o the_o church_n or_o the_o pope_n whereby_o it_o do_v easy_o appear_v how_o captious_a those_o reason_n and_o conclusion_n be_v which_o sanders_n from_o who_o bellarmine_n have_v receive_v this_o stuff_n of_o he_o do_v deduce_v out_o of_o those_o manner_n of_o promise_n make_v either_o secret_o or_o express_o for_o as_o concern_v those_o form_n of_o ask_v and_o answer_v which_o he_o with_o many_o idle_a word_n and_o false_o devise_v between_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o prince_n which_o come_v to_o the_o church_n we_o must_v answer_v that_o they_o be_v fond_o conceive_v by_o he_o and_o that_o they_o neither_o aught_o nor_o be_v accustom_v to_o pass_v in_o the_o admittance_n of_o heathen_a prince_n which_o come_v to_o the_o church_n lest_o the_o church_n shall_v seem_v either_o to_o suspect_v they_o or_o to_o divine_a and_o conceive_v ill_a of_o they_o for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v therefore_o their_o burn_a love_n towards_o christ_n and_o present_a confession_n of_o their_o faith_n whereby_o they_o in_o general_a term_n promise_v that_o they_o will_v give_v there_o name_n to_o christ_n and_o become_v child_n of_o the_o church_n and_o will_v renounce_v the_o devil_n and_o his_o work_n and_o keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n and_o the_o church_n and_o such_o like_a be_v cause_n sufficient_a enough_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v receive_v all_o which_o matter_n they_o do_v indeed_o promise_v to_o christ_n the_o church_n receive_v the_o promise_n as_o his_o spouse_n in_o who_o bosom_n they_o be_v regenerate_v or_o the_o bishop_n himself_o not_o as_o a_o man_n but_o as_o a_o minister_n of_o christ_n god_n himself_o discharge_v a_o deputy_n office_n herein_o and_o therefore_o the_o obligation_n be_v principal_o take_v to_o christ_n himself_o by_o the_o church_n or_o the_o pope_n whereby_o although_o they_o have_v also_o promise_v all_o other_o thing_n which_o sanders_n have_v comprehend_v in_o that_o forge_a form_n of_o he_o and_o shall_v afterward_o neglect_v or_o whole_o contemn_v that_o covenant_n agree_v on_o they_o can_v be_v punish_v by_o he_o only_o into_o who_o word_n they_o do_v swear_v and_o who_o be_v the_o lord_n of_o all_o temporal_a estate_n and_o who_o they_o have_v for_o their_o only_a judge_n over_o they_o intemporall_a matter_n but_o not_o by_o he_o to_o who_o the_o care_n only_o of_o spiritual_a matter_n and_o to_o take_v the_o promise_n be_v commit_v and_o to_o these_o spiritual_a matter_n be_v those_o thing_n most_o like_a and_o most_o resemble_v they_o which_o we_o see_v daily_o to_o be_v observe_v in_o the_o civil_a government_n they_o who_o aspire_v to_o the_o succession_n of_o feude_n or_o fee_n whether_o they_o come_v in_o by_o hereditary_a right_n or_o by_o any_o other_o title_n can_v enjoy_v they_o unless_o they_o first_o be_v admit_v into_o his_o clientele_n and_o service_n who_o be_v lord_n of_o the_o fee_n that_o be_v unless_o they_o in_o word_n conceive_v do_v take_v the_o oath_n of_o fealty_n to_o the_o lord_n which_o they_o common_o call_v homagium_fw-la or_o hominium_fw-la but_o if_o it_o be_v the_o king_n fee_n to_o which_o they_o succeed_v the_o king_n do_v seldom_o in_o his_o own_o person_n take_v the_o oath_n of_o fealty_n but_o execute_v that_o business_n for_o the_o most_o part_n by_o his_o chancellor_n or_o soem_n other_o deputy_n especial_o assign_v for_o that_o purpose_n therefore_o the_o chancellor_n when_o he_o admit_v to_o fee_n and_o honour_n great_a personage_n swear_v into_o the_o king_n word_n he_o discharge_v the_o same_o office_n under_o the_o king_n in_o a_o civil_a administration_n and_o jurisdiction_n which_o the_o pope_n do_v under_o christ_n in_o the_o spiritual_a government_n of_o the_o church_n when_o he_o receive_v prince_n come_v unto_o she_o by_o take_v the_o oath_n of_o their_o faithfulness_n and_o piety_n towards_o god_n and_o the_o chancellor_n the_o tenant_n once_o admit_v although_o after_o he_o break_v his_o oath_n and_o commit_v the_o crime_n which_o they_o call_v felony_n may_v in_o no_o cause_n take_v away_o the_o fee_n which_o be_v the_o proper_a right_n of_o the_o king_n alone_o and_o not_o grant_v to_o the_o chancellor_n at_o all_o so_o neither_o can_v the_o pope_n deprive_v of_o kingdom_n and_o authority_n or_o any_o way_n temporal_o punish_v prince_n receive_v into_o the_o church_n although_o they_o offend_v grievous_o afterward_o or_o forsake_v the_o faith_n because_o that_o be_v reserve_v to_o god_n only_o therefore_o although_o christian_n king_n and_o prince_n be_v in_o the_o church_n and_o in_o respect_n that_o they_o be_v the_o child_n of_o the_o church_n be_v inferior_a to_o the_o church_n and_o the_o pope_n notwithstanding_o in_o regard_n that_o they_o do_v bear_v a_o sovereign_a rule_n temporal_a in_o the_o world_n they_o be_v not_o inferior_n but_o rather_o superior_n and_o therefore_o although_o they_o have_v forfeit_v their_o kingdom_n by_o secret_a or_o express_a covenant_n yet_o neither_o people_n nor_o pope_n nor_o church_n can_v take_v it_o away_o from_o they_o but_o only_o almighty_a god_n alone_o from_o who_o be_v all_o power_n and_o to_o who_o alove_o they_o be_v inferior_a in_o civil_a administration_n and_o neither_o shall_v bellarmine_n nor_o any_o other_o be_v ever_o able_a to_o bring_v or_o as_o i_o may_v say_v to_o dig_v out_o of_o the_o monument_n of_o any_o age_n any_o forcible_a argument_n whereby_o he_o may_v make_v it_o plain_a unto_o we_o that_o secular_a king_n and_o prince_n when_o they_o be_v receive_v to_o the_o faith_n by_o the_o church_n do_v in_o such_o manner_n renounce_v their_o interest_n as_o both_o to_o lay_v down_o altogether_o the_o temporal_a authority_n which_o they_o have_v receive_v of_o god_n and_o also_o to_o subject_v themselves_o to_o the_o church_n to_o be_v judge_v in_o civil_a affair_n and_o to_o be_v chastise_v with_o temporal_a punishment_n and_o if_o none_o of_o they_o can_v demonstrate_v this_o they_o must_v needs_o confess_v that_o king_n and_o prince_n do_v after_o the_o faith_n receive_v retain_v their_o kingdom_n and_o empire_n in_o the_o same_o right_n the_o same_o liberty_n and_o authority_n wherein_o they_o possess_v they_o before_o such_o time_n as_o they_o come_v to_o the_o church_n because_o as_o the_o adversary_n do_v confess_v lex_fw-la christineminem_fw-la private_a jure_fw-la svo_fw-la if_o therefore_o before_o baptism_n they_o have_v no_o judge_n above_o they_o in_o temporal_a matter_n but_o god_n alone_o neither_o ought_v they_o to_o have_v any_o after_o baptism_n but_o we_o have_v speak_v more_o of_o this_o matter_n in_o the_o refutation_n of_o the_o first_o reason_n in_o this_o place_n i_o stand_v not_o much_o upon_o bozius_n his_o dotage_n now_o for_o that_o he_o underlay_v after_o this_o four_o reason_n in_o the_o word_n follow_v for_o he_o be_v not_o fit_a to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n who_o be_v not_o ready_a to_o serve_v christ_n and_o for_o his_o sake_n to_o loose_v whatsoever_o he_o have_v for_o the_o lord_n say_v lu._n 14._o if_o any_o man_n come_v to_o i_o and_o hate_v not_o father_n and_o mother_n and_o wife_n and_o child_n yea_o and_o even_o his_o own_o life_n he_o can_v be_v my_o disciple_n i_o can_v tell_v to_o what_o end_n he_o use_v these_o word_n sure_o no_o man_n deny_v it_o but_o what_o of_o it_o such_o a_o reason_n belong_v no_o more_o to_o the_o purpose_n then_o that_o which_o be_v further_a from_o the_o matter_n nor_o that_o neither_o which_o follow_v in_o the_o same_o place_n beside_o say_v he_o the_o church_n shall_v grievous_o err_v if_o she_o shall_v admit_v any_o king_n which_o will_v with_o impunity_n cherish_v every_o manner_n of_o sect_n and_o defend_v heretic_n and_o overthrow_v religion_n this_o be_v most_o true_a but_o as_o i_o say_v it_o belong_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n for_o now_o the_o question_n be_v not_o of_o that_o matter_n but_o of_o the_o temporal_a power_n of_o the_o church_n or_o of_o the_o pope_n who_o be_v the_o substitute_n head_n thereof_o under_o christ_n i_o mean_v whether_o he_o have_v that_o power_n whereby_o he_o may_v chastise_v with_o temporal_a punishment_n king_n and_o prince_n due_o receive_v if_o after_o they_o shall_v break_v the_o faith_n and_o forsake_v the_o duty_n undertake_v by_o they_o in_o the_o laver_n of_o regeneration_n or_o no._n now_o neither_o part_n of_o this_o question_n be_v either_o prove_v or_o disproove_v by_o these_o correllary_n and_o addition_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n we_o pass_v they_o over_o chap._n xxv_o the_o five_o and_o last_o reason_n be_v draw_v from_o his_o pastoral_a charge_n and_o office_n in_o these_o word_n when_o it_o be_v say_v to_o peter_n feed_v my_o sheep_n john_n the_o last_o all_o the_o power_n be_v give_v he_o which_o be_v necessary_a to_o maintain_v the_o
proposition_n and_o therefore_o if_o we_o grant_v they_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v therefore_o all_o this_o be_v true_a and_o we_o grant_v it_o all_o but_o yet_o that_o which_o he_o annect_v and_o knit_v to_o this_o conclusion_n be_v neither_o agreeable_a nor_o consequent_a which_o be_v that_o the_o pastor_n may_v enjoin_v the_o people_n etc._n etc._n for_o to_o be_v able_a or_o not_o to_o be_v able_a posse_fw-la where_o the_o right_a and_o equity_n be_v dispute_v aught_o to_o be_v understand_v not_o of_o the_o mere_a act_n but_o of_o the_o power_n which_o be_v lawful_o permit_v and_o which_o agree_v with_o law_n and_o reason_n so_o as_o in_o this_o case_n the_o pope_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v able_a to_o do_v that_o which_o he_o be_v able_a to_o do_v just_o and_o honest_o institut_n and_o so_o the_o matter_n be_v bring_v about_o as_o we_o be_v enforce_v to_o inquire_v posse_fw-la whether_o the_o pope_n by_o the_o plenitude_n of_o his_o apostolic_a power_n as_o they_o speak_v can_v command_v &_o enjoin_v subject_n that_o they_o dare_v not_o be_v so_o bold_a as_o to_o obey_v the_o edict_n commandment_n law_n of_o their_o prince_n under_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n and_o if_o he_o shall_v de_fw-fr facto_fw-la command_v the_o law_n whether_o the_o subject_n be_v bind_v to_o obey_v any_o such_o commandment_n of_o the_o pope_n sure_o as_o i_o touch_v in_o the_o beginning_n for_o the_o affirmative_a i_o can_v never_o in_o my_o life_n either_o myself_o find_v a_o weighty_a argument_n nor_o light_n upon_o any_o invent_v by_o a_o other_o but_o the_o contrary_a proposition_n be_v strong_o maintain_v be_v build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n which_o we_o speak_v of_o ere_o while_n viz._n that_o the_o pope_n can_v in_o any_o sort_n dispense_v against_o a_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o of_o god_n upon_o which_o ground_n be_v raise_v a_o most_o firm_a argument_n in_o my_o opinion_n which_o be_v conclude_v in_o this_o form_n the_o pope_n can_v command_v or_o dispense_v in_o nothing_o against_o the_o law_n natural_a and_o divine_a but_o to_o command_v or_o dispense_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o subjection_n and_o obedience_n due_a to_o prince_n be_v against_o law_n natural_a and_o divine_a ergo_fw-la the_o pope_n can_v command_v or_o dispense_v in_o the_o same_o and_o by_o consequence_n can_v command_v the_o subject_n that_o they_o do_v not_o obey_v their_o temporal_a prince_n in_o that_o wherein_o the_o prince_n be_v superior_a to_o he_o and_o if_o he_o shall_v de_fw-fr facto_fw-la command_n it_o shall_v be_v lawful_a for_o the_o subject_n to_o disobey_v he_o with_o safety_n and_o good_a conscience_n as_o one_o that_o presume_v to_o give_v law_n without_o the_o compass_n of_o his_o territory_n or_o jurisdiction_n both_o the_o proposition_n be_v most_o certain_a out_o of_o which_o the_o conclusion_n be_v induce_v by_o a_o necessary_a consecution_n he_o that_o shall_v weaken_v the_o force_n of_o this_o argument_n shall_v do_v i_o a_o very_a great_a pleasure_n and_o make_v i_o behold_v to_o he_o for_o my_o part_n that_o i_o may_v ingenuous_o confess_v my_o slender_a wit_n i_o do_v not_o see_v in_o the_o world_n how_o it_o can_v be_v check_v by_o any_o sound_a reason_n for_o though_o it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o obedience_n due_a to_o a_o superior_a may_v be_v restrain_v and_o hinder_v by_o he_o who_o be_v superior_a to_o that_o superior_a and_o that_o the_o pope_n who_o be_v father_n of_o all_o christian_n be_v superior_a to_o all_o king_n and_o prince_n christian_n in_o this_o that_o he_o be_v father_n and_o therefore_o that_o he_o may_v of_o his_o own_o authority_n inhibit_v and_o restrain_v that_o the_o subject_n do_v not_o perform_v the_o reverence_n and_o obedience_n due_a and_o promise_v to_o the_o prince_n yet_o this_o reason_n be_v like_o a_o paint_a ordinance_n not_o able_a to_o beat_v down_o the_o strength_n of_o the_o former_a conclusion_n see_v this_o which_o be_v say_v that_o obedience_n du_fw-fr to_o a_o superior_a may_v be_v diminish_v or_o restrain_v or_o take_v away_o by_o his_o commandment_n who_o be_v superior_a to_o that_o superior_a this_o be_v true_a only_a then_o when_o he_o who_o forbid_v it_o be_v superior_a in_o the_o same_o kind_n and_o line_n of_o power_n and_o superiority_n or_o in_o those_o thing_n wherein_o obedience_n be_v due_a as_o for_o example_n the_o king_n may_v take_v from_o the_o lieutenant_n of_o his_o army_n his_o command_n and_o give_v charge_n that_o the_o army_n obey_v he_o no_o more_o and_o the_o lieutenant_n may_v upon_o cause_n command_v that_o the_o soldier_n obey_v not_o the_o tribune_n nor_o the_o tribune_n the_o centurion_n nor_o the_o centurion_n the_o decurion_n for_o that_o all_o these_o in_o the_o same_o kind_n i_o mean_v about_o military_a government_n &_o discipline_n but_o one_o above_o a_o other_o be_v superior_a according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o dignity_n the_o same_o be_v true_a in_o the_o order_n of_o the_o heavenly_a warfare_n and_o of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a hierarchy_n but_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o subject_n towards_o the_o prince_n whereof_o we_o speak_v consist_v in_o temporal_a matter_n wherein_o the_o pope_n themselves_o confess_v that_o there_o be_v none_o above_o the_o prince_n legit_fw-la but_o if_o none_o be_v above_o he_o in_o temporality_n sure_o it_o follow_v that_o there_o be_v none_o that_o may_v forbid_v or_o hinder_v the_o subjection_n and_o obedience_n which_o be_v due_a to_o he_o from_o his_o subject_n in_o temporality_n i_o have_v show_v above_o that_o these_o power_n the_o spiritual_a and_o temporal_a be_v so_o distinct_a that_o neither_o as_o it_o be_v such_o do_v command_v or_o serve_v the_o other_o and_o that_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v regard_v who_o fly_v to_o their_o start_a hole_n of_o distinction_n and_o quirk_n or_o rather_o those_o snare_n of_o verbal_a caption_n by_o these_o word_n directè_fw-la &_o indirectè_fw-la for_o it_o be_v most_o sure_a that_o he_o have_v a_o superior_a in_o temporalty_n who_o a_o other_o may_v in_o any_o sort_n command_v about_a temporal_a matter_n or_o who_o in_o temporal_a cause_n may_v be_v judge_v direct_o or_o indirect_o by_o a_o other_o for_o judgement_n be_v give_v of_o one_o against_o his_o will_n ubl_a and_o no_o man_n be_v judge_v but_o of_o his_o superior_a because_o a_o equal_a have_v no_o command_n over_o a_o equal_a treb._n and_o indeed_o for_o the_o effect_n and_o issue_n of_o the_o matter_n there_o be_v no_o difference_n at_o all_o whether_o one_o have_v authority_n and_o power_n over_o a_o other_o direct_o or_o indirect_o for_o in_o those_o word_n directè_fw-la &_o indirectè_fw-la or_o if_o you_o please_v direct_o and_o oblique_o the_o difference_n be_v propound_v to_o we_o only_o in_o the_o manner_n and_o way_n or_o order_n of_o obtain_v and_o come_v by_o the_o former_a but_o not_o in_o the_o liberty_n force_n and_o effect_n of_o exercise_v and_o execute_v the_o same_o but_o good_a god_n what_o can_v be_v say_v more_o unreasonable_o or_o more_o contrary_a to_o the_o self_n than_o this_o that_o a_o king_n have_v no_o superior_a in_o temporalty_n but_o be_v free_a from_o all_o band_n of_o offence_n nor_o be_v bring_v to_o punishment_n by_o any_o law_n which_o all_o antiquity_n and_o the_o whole_a church_n have_v ever_o hold_v and_o again_o that_o the_o pope_n upon_o cause_n or_o in_o some_o manner_n that_o be_v to_o say_v indirect_o be_v superior_a to_o the_o king_n in_o temporalty_n and_o may_v punish_v he_o with_o temporal_a punishment_n that_o be_v with_o loss_n of_o kingdom_n &_o rule_n yea_o &_o life_n also_o for_o after_o that_o he_o be_v once_o defect_a &_o throw_v down_o from_o his_o throne_n by_o the_o pope_n and_o reduce_v to_o the_o condition_n of_o a_o private_a man_n what_o remain_v but_o that_o he_o shall_v undergo_v the_o last_o issue_n of_o this_o malice_n and_o that_o be_v either_o to_o provide_v for_o his_o safety_n by_o speedy_a flight_n and_o so_o live_v a_o miserable_a life_n out_o of_o his_o country_n or_o if_o he_o do_v not_o in_o this_o manner_n provide_v for_o himself_o be_v will_v forthwith_o be_v arraign_v and_o convince_v in_o public_a judgement_n and_o then_o fall_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o a_o gaoler_n or_o a_o executioner_n and_o so_o there_o will_v be_v a_o end_n of_o he_o now_o there_o be_v in_o this_o power_n which_o these_o good_a fellow_n do_v attribute_v indirect_o to_o the_o pope_n a_o sovereign_a free_a and_o uncontrolled_a liberty_n to_o oppress_v and_o to_o exercise_v tyranny_n even_o over_o good_a and_o innocent_a king_n for_o first_o of_o all_o they_o ordain_v that_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o pope_n to_o judge_v if_o a_o king_n be_v to_o be_v depose_v or_o not_o to_o be_v depose_v second_o that_o there_o be_v no_o appeal_n from_o his_o judgement_n because_o he_o alone_o judge_v all_o
man_n and_o be_v judge_v of_o no_o man_n and_o so_o shall_v it_o be_v in_o the_o power_n and_o pleasure_n of_o a_o malicious_a pope_n whensoever_o he_o conceive_v and_o burn_v with_o any_o private_a hatred_n against_o any_o king_n though_o he_o be_v never_o so_o good_a to_o pretend_v some_o occasion_n or_o other_o of_o a_o indirect_a prerogative_n that_o he_o may_v turn_v he_o out_o of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o reduce_v he_o to_o the_o estate_n of_o a_o private_a man_n which_o i_o will_v not_o speak_v in_o this_o place_n for_o i_o will_v not_o presage_v so_o hardly_o of_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o holy_a see_v but_o that_o all_o the_o world_n do_v understand_v that_o the_o same_o have_v in_o former_a age_n be_v practise_v by_o diverse_a pope_n and_o it_o be_v not_o yet_o above_o the_o age_n of_o a_o good_a old_a man_n since_o julius_n the_o ii_o do_v most_o wicked_o and_o unjust_o take_v from_o john_n king_n of_o navarre_n his_o kingdom_n by_o ferdinando_n of_o arragon_n by_o this_o very_a pretence_n of_o the_o papal_a authority_n the_o same_o john_n be_v not_o guilty_a or_o convince_v of_o any_o crime_n but_o only_o because_o he_o favour_v lewes_n the_o french_a king_n and_o if_o to_o do_v matter_n of_o this_o nature_n be_v not_o to_o be_v superior_a in_o temporal_a affair_n i_o will_v glad_o learn_v of_o these_o great_a master_n what_o it_o be_v to_o be_v a_o superior_a one_o thing_n i_o know_v if_o this_o opinion_n of_o they_o be_v true_a that_o the_o pope_n be_v able_a to_o do_v more_o against_o king_n indirect_o then_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v direct_o any_o command_n over_o they_o of_o which_o point_n we_o have_v speak_v something_o before_o king_n if_o therefore_o the_o pope_n de_fw-fr apostolicae_fw-la potestatis_fw-la plenitudine_fw-la shall_v go_v about_o by_o his_o decree_n or_o bull_n to_o forbid_v they_o to_o obey_v their_o king_n may_v not_o all_o the_o people_n again_o or_o some_o in_o the_o people_n behalf_n answer_v the_o pope_n in_o this_o manner_n holy_a father_n you_o be_v not_o above_o our_o king_n in_o temporalty_n and_o in_o that_o respect_n you_o can_v hinder_v the_o temporal_a obedience_n which_o we_o perform_v unto_o he_o why_o do_v you_o forbid_v we_o to_o do_v that_o which_o god_n command_v we_o to_o do_v be_v it_o because_o it_o be_v at_o your_o pleasure_n to_o interpret_v the_o will_n of_o god_n comprehend_v in_o the_o divine_a law_n and_o in_o the_o scripture_n but_o notwithstanding_o there_o must_v no_o such_o interpretation_n be_v make_v as_o do_v whole_o make_v the_o law_n void_a and_o utter_o do_v destroy_v and_o dissolve_v the_o commandment_n if_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n doubtful_a or_o dark_a in_o the_o law_n of_o god_n we_o present_o fly_v to_o the_o see_v of_o peter_n that_o be_v to_o the_o see_v which_o you_o now_o do_v hold_v to_o receive_v the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o truth_n but_o that_o which_o be_v clear_a and_o manifest_a of_o itself_o that_o need_v no_o light_n of_o any_o interpretation_n see_v then_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n command_v we_o to_o give_v to_o caesar_n those_o thing_n which_o be_v caesar_n and_o to_o god_n those_o thing_n which_o be_v god_n and_o after_o by_o his_o apostle_n to_o be_v subject_a to_o prince_n and_o power_n and_o to_o be_v obedient_a to_o they_o it_o be_v your_o part_n to_o declare_v unto_o we_o what_o thing_n be_v caesar_n that_o be_v to_o say_v what_o thing_n belong_v to_o our_o king_n and_o what_o be_v god_n that_o both_o of_o they_o may_v have_v that_o which_o belong_v to_o they_o and_o in_o this_o distinction_n of_o thing_n we_o will_v willing_o hear_v your_o voice_n but_o when_o you_o say_v i_o will_v have_v you_o give_v nothing_o to_o caesar_n or_o to_o your_o prince_n you_o contradict_v christ_n and_o therefore_o we_o hear_v not_o your_o voice_n we_o do_v indeed_o confess_v and_o profess_v also_o that_o the_o exposition_n and_o interpretation_n of_o your_o holiness_n shall_v take_v place_n touch_v the_o observation_n of_o the_o divine_a law_n but_o we_o affirm_v absolute_o that_o that_o be_v not_o to_o be_v receive_v which_o make_v a_o scorn_n both_o of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o of_o nature_n and_o bring_v the_o same_o into_o contempt_n as_o for_o example_n not_o to_o digress_v from_o the_o matter_n we_o have_v in_o hand_n we_o be_v command_v to_o obey_v our_o prince_n and_o magistrate_n in_o the_o observation_n of_o this_o commandment_n we_o as_o obedient_a child_n do_v willing_o embrace_v your_o exposition_n and_o restraint_n which_o do_v not_o quite_o destroy_v and_o extinguish_v the_o commandment_n itself_o as_o when_o you_o say_v that_o from_o hence_o there_o grow_v no_o obligation_n to_o obey_v king_n but_o in_o those_o matter_n which_o belong_v to_o their_o temporal_a jurisdiction_n that_o all_o spiritual_a thing_n be_v to_o be_v reserve_v to_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o the_o church_n also_o when_o as_o you_o do_v advertise_v we_o that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o yield_v obedience_n to_o the_o king_n in_o that_o which_o he_o command_v against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n or_o nature_n or_o which_o otherwise_o be_v repugnant_a to_o good_a manner_n but_o when_o as_o you_o simple_o and_o absolute_o command_v we_o that_o we_o do_v not_o in_o any_o sort_n obey_v our_o lawful_a prince_n or_o any_o of_o his_o charge_n commandment_n and_o law_n we_o may_v not_o obey_v this_o commandment_n of_o you_o because_o this_o be_v not_o to_o interpret_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n which_o be_v grant_v to_o your_o holiness_n but_o utter_o to_o abrogate_v and_o overthrow_v the_o same_o which_o you_o can_v do_v by_o any_o mean_n christ_n when_o he_o deliver_v to_o peter_n the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n do_v not_o give_v he_o power_n rescript_n faciend_n de_fw-fr peccato_fw-la non_fw-la peccatum_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o which_o be_v sin_n to_o make_v it_o to_o be_v none_o therefore_o in_o this_o point_n we_o will_v follow_v the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o the_o canonist_n that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o obey_v the_o pope_n commandment_n if_o either_o it_o be_v unjust_a or_o that_o many_o mischief_n or_o scandal_n be_v likely_a to_o ensue_v thereof_o or_o else_o the_o disturbance_n and_o disquietness_n of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o christian_a commonwealth_n be_v likely_a to_o grow_v of_o the_o same_o and_o therefore_o if_o the_o pope_n shall_v command_v any_o thing_n to_o religious_a man_n which_o be_v against_o the_o substance_n of_o order_n that_o be_v which_o shall_v be_v contrary_a to_o the_o rule_n profess_v by_o they_o they_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o obey_v it_o as_o felinus_n interprete_v in_o cap._n accepimus_fw-la de_fw-fr fid_fw-we instrum_fw-la &_o cap._n si_fw-la quando_fw-la de_fw-fr rescript_n as_o the_o same_o innocent_a teach_v simon_n elsewhere_o who_o martin_n of_o carat_n in_o his_o tractate_n de_fw-fr principibus_fw-la quast_o 408._o and_o felinus_n in_o the_o cap._n si_fw-la quando_fw-la and_o d._n cap._n accepimus_fw-la do_v report_n and_o follow_v how_o much_o less_o than_o ought_v the_o subject_n of_o king_n to_o give_v ear_n to_o the_o pope_n go_v about_o to_o withdraw_v they_o from_o the_o obedience_n which_o be_v due_a to_o their_o king_n by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o nature_n and_o confirm_v with_o the_o most_o straight_a obligation_n of_o a_o oath_n if_o you_o will_v we_o to_o withdraw_v our_o neck_n from_o the_o yoke_n and_o service_n of_o our_o king_n for_o this_o cause_n because_o a_o spiritual_a good_a be_v hinder_v by_o our_o obedience_n which_o be_v give_v to_o he_o by_o we_o we_o answer_v that_o this_o mischief_n whatsoever_o it_o be_v chance_v to_o fall_v out_o by_o some_o accident_n for_o simple_o and_o of_o itself_o evil_o can_v grow_v out_o of_o good_a nor_o good_a out_o of_o evil_a now_o we_o have_v against_o our_o will_n commit_v that_o accident_n but_o we_o can_v hinder_v it_o we_o discharge_v the_o duty_n due_a to_o our_o king_n and_o according_a to_o patience_n in_o do_v well_o we_o seek_v glory_n honour_n and_o immortality_n 2._o he_o if_o he_o abuse_v the_o obedience_n due_a unto_o he_o and_o so_o great_a a_o benefit_n of_o god_n he_o shall_v feel_v god_n to_o be_v a_o most_o sharp_a judge_n and_o revenger_n over_o he_o but_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o we_o to_o forsake_v our_o duty_n and_o to_o transgress_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n that_o even_o a_o very_a great_a good_a shall_v follow_v thereby_o lest_o we_o purchase_v to_o ourselves_o the_o damnation_n which_o the_o apostle_n do_v denounce_v he_o that_o command_v to_o obey_v our_o king_n and_o to_o yield_v to_o caesar_n those_o thing_n which_o be_v caesar_n put_v no_o distinction_n between_o good_a and_o evil_a prince_n and_o therefore_o ought_v not_o we_o to_o make_v any_o
distinction_n act_n if_o as_o b._n augustine_n teach_v he_o who_o reader_n have_v vow_v continence_n to_o god_n aught_o by_o no_o mean_n to_o offend_v even_o with_o this_o recompense_n that_o he_o believe_v he_o may_v lawful_o marry_v a_o wife_n because_o she_o who_o desire_v to_o marry_v with_o he_o have_v promise_v that_o she_o will_v be_v a_o christian_n and_o so_o may_v purchase_v to_o christ_n the_o soul_n of_o a_o woman_n which_o lie_v in_o the_o death_n of_o infidelity_n who_o if_o she_o marry_v he_o be_v ready_a to_o prove_v a_o christian_a what_o excuse_n shall_v we_o use_v to_o god_n if_o we_o for_o the_o hope_n of_o some_o contingent_a good_a shall_v violate_v the_o religion_n and_o faith_n of_o our_o oath_n which_o we_o have_v give_v to_o god_n and_o our_o king_n for_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o precious_a than_o a_o soul_n for_o which_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n have_v vouchsafe_v to_o die_v and_o therefore_o if_o we_o may_v not_o sin_n to_o gain_v that_o to_o christ_n for_o what_o cause_n shall_v it_o be_v lawful_a for_o we_o to_o sin_n moreover_o in_o that_o you_o say_v that_o you_o do_v free_a we_o and_o pronounce_v we_o free_a from_o the_o bond_n of_o this_o duty_n that_o take_v not_o from_o we_o all_o scruple_n of_o conscience_n but_o cause_v we_o to_o hang_v in_o suspense_n and_o the_o more_o to_o doubt_v of_o your_o authority_n because_o we_o know_v that_o the_o commandment_n wherein_o you_o promise_v to_o dispense_v with_o we_o be_v ratify_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o nature_n and_o that_o your_o holiness_n can_v never_o no_o not_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o fullness_n of_o your_o power_n dispense_v with_o any_o in_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o nature_n therefore_o we_o will_v obey_v you_o in_o spiritual_a matter_n and_o the_o king_n in_o temporal_a matter_n god_n command_v both_o we_o will_v perform_v both_o to_o be_v short_a the_o commination_n and_o threaten_n which_o you_o insert_v in_o your_o mandate_n we_o do_v wonder_n at_o sure_o and_o in_o some_o part_n we_o fear_v they_o but_o yet_o we_o be_v not_o altogether_o so_o fearful_a as_o to_o be_v more_o afraid_a of_o they_o then_o we_o ought_v or_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v so_o terrify_v with_o they_o as_o for_o fear_n of_o a_o unjust_a excommunication_n to_o deny_v to_o our_o king_n the_o just_a and_o lawful_a obedience_n which_o be_v due_a unto_o he_o for_o although_o it_o be_v a_o common_a speech_n that_o every_o excommunication_n be_v to_o be_v fear_v 3._o yet_o we_o ought_v to_o know_v that_o a_o unjust_a excommunication_n hurt_v not_o he_o against_o who_o it_o be_v denounce_v but_o rather_o he_o by_o who_o it_o be_v denounce_v 3._o therefore_o if_o you_o strike_v we_o with_o the_o edge_n of_o your_o excommunication_n because_o we_o will_v not_o at_o your_o commandment_n transgress_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n and_o malum_fw-la facere_fw-la your_o malediction_n and_o curse_n shall_v be_v turn_v into_o a_o blessing_n so_o as_o although_o we_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v bind_v outward_o yet_o inward_o we_o remain_v as_o it_o be_v loose_v and_o innocent_a these_o and_o such_o like_a be_v the_o reason_n which_o have_v so_o settle_v the_o faith_n as_o well_o of_o the_o clergy_n as_o nobility_n and_o even_o of_o the_o whole_a commons_o of_o france_n towards_o their_o king_n that_o they_o have_v resolute_o withstand_v certain_a pope_n who_o have_v earnest_o labour_v to_o withdraw_v they_o from_o their_o loyalty_n and_o obedience_n of_o their_o king_n and_o have_v scorn_v the_o pope_n bull_n and_o the_o sentence_n of_o deposition_n and_o deprivation_n from_o the_o kingdom_n nay_o more_o that_o they_o have_v not_o believe_v therefore_o not_o without_o reason_n that_o they_o be_v bind_v by_o any_o ecclesiastic_a censure_n or_o may_v just_o be_v enwrap_v in_o any_o bond_n of_o anathema_n or_o excommunication_n for_o my_o part_n sure_o i_o do_v not_o see_v what_o may_v just_o be_v blame_v in_o the_o former_a answer_n and_o defence_n of_o the_o people_n unless_o it_o be_v impute_v to_o they_o and_o be_v sufficient_a to_o convince_v they_o of_o contumacy_n because_o they_o do_v not_o by_o and_o by_o put_v in_o execution_n without_o all_o delay_n or_o examination_n of_o the_o equity_n every_o commandment_n of_o the_o pope_n as_o though_o it_o be_v deliver_v even_o by_o the_o voice_n of_o god_n himself_o which_o i_o think_v none_o in_o his_o right_a wit_n will_v judge_v as_o for_o the_o other_o point_n they_o be_v ground_v on_o most_o firm_a demonstration_n most_o sound_a reason_n and_o argument_n and_o reason_n of_o divine_a and_o humane_a law_n viz._n that_o it_o be_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n that_o honour_n and_o obedience_n shall_v be_v yield_v to_o king_n and_o prince_n no_o difference_n or_o distinction_n of_o good_a and_o wicked_a prince_n in_o that_o point_n be_v propound_v that_o all_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n consist_v in_o spiritual_a matter_n that_o temporal_a affair_n be_v leave_v to_o secular_a king_n and_o prince_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o superior_a to_o king_n in_o temporal_a matter_n and_o therefore_o that_o he_o can_v punish_v they_o with_o temporal_a punishment_n last_o that_o the_o pope_n can_v in_o no_o sort_n dispense_v against_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o of_o god_n whereby_o this_o obedience_n be_v command_v the_o subject_n towards_o the_o prince_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n can_v neither_o absolve_v and_o discharge_v the_o subject_n from_o that_o obligation_n nor_o by_o just_a excommunication_n censure_v they_o who_o do_v not_o obey_v he_o when_o he_o forbid_v they_o to_o give_v lawful_a obedience_n to_o the_o prince_n all_o which_o point_n be_v several_o and_o distinct_o conclude_v before_o with_o authority_n testimony_n and_o argument_n which_o in_o my_o opinion_n can_v be_v answer_v which_o notwithstanding_o i_o will_v leave_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n for_o this_o be_v my_o mind_n and_o resolution_n to_o submit_v myself_o and_o all_o mine_n to_o the_o censure_n and_o judgement_n of_o my_o most_o holy_a mother_n chap._n xxxi_o those_o thing_n which_o hitherto_o have_v be_v deliver_v by_o we_o of_o the_o sovereign_a authority_n of_o king_n and_o prince_n and_o of_o the_o duty_n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v deny_v to_o they_o in_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o repugnant_a to_o god_n commandment_n and_o to_o good_a manner_n they_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o continual_a and_o solemn_a observation_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o the_o whole_a church_n for_o although_o they_o have_v great_a opportunit●e_n and_o mean_n to_o pull_v down_o and_o to_o defect_n from_o their_o government_n wicked_a christian_a prince_n by_o who_o they_o have_v be_v wrong_v with_o private_a and_o public_a injury_n yet_o in_o no_o manner_n do_v they_o move_v any_o question_n against_o they_o touch_v their_o authority_n and_o rule_n they_o deny_v they_o no_o parcel_n of_o humane_a obsequy_n and_o obedience_n only_o they_o wise_o free_o and_o stout_o resist_v their_o error_n and_o so_o hold_v the_o multitude_n in_o their_o duty_n towards_o god_n and_o their_o king_n they_o observe_v both_o precept_n of_o fear_v god_n and_o honour_v the_o king_n and_o in_o very_a deed_n this_o be_v the_o principal_a remedy_n to_o preserve_v man_n mind_n from_o slip_v and_o revoke_v they_o from_o error_n and_o the_o most_o ready_a way_n and_o mean_a to_o reduce_v king_n and_o prince_n be_v furious_o carry_v headlong_o with_o a_o frenticke_a heresy_n from_o immanitie_n and_o fierceness_n to_o courtesy_n and_o mildness_n from_o error_n to_o truth_n from_o heresy_n to_o the_o faith_n which_o course_n the_o ancient_a father_n ever_o hold_v in_o such_o like_a case_n which_o if_o the_o other_o pope_n have_v follow_v in_o these_o latter_a age_n and_o have_v not_o arrogate_a to_o themselves_o that_o same_o insolent_a and_o proud_a and_o hateful_a domination_n over_o king_n and_o emperor_n in_o temporal_a matter_n it_o have_v go_v better_a than_o at_o this_o time_n it_o do_v with_o the_o christian_a commonwealth_n and_o peradventure_o those_o heresy_n wherewith_o we_o be_v now_o sore_o press_v may_v have_v be_v strangle_v in_o the_o very_a cradle_n for_o even_o the_o issue_n and_o the_o event_n of_o business_n to_o this_o day_n do_v sufficient_o teach_v that_o the_o pope_n do_v little_a or_o nothing_o avail_v while_o they_o hold_v this_o high_a slippery_a and_o steep_a headlong_a way_n but_o that_o they_o do_v more_o time_n raise_v trouble_n schism_n and_o war_n by_o this_o mean_a in_o christian_a country_n then_o propagate_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n or_o increase_v the_o profit_n and_o enlarge_v the_o liberty_n of_o the_o church_n how_o unprofitable_a and_o hurtful_a to_o the_o christian_a commonwealth_n that_o assault_n be_v of_o gregory_n the_o vii_o upon_o henry_n the_o iv._o which_o gregory_n be_v the_o
of_o the_o church_n have_v authority_n as_o well_o over_o body_n and_o good_n as_o over_o the_o soul_n of_o all_o christian_n which_o no_o sober_a man_n before_o he_o do_v ever_o so_o much_o as_o dream_v of_o but_o with_o what_o unhandsomeness_n and_o incongruence_n he_o deduce_v this_o out_o of_o the_o reason_n lay_v before_o by_o he_o i_o will_v say_v open_a in_o the_o next_o chapter_n but_o he_o apply_v to_o his_o purpose_n the_o argument_n take_v from_o the_o person_n of_o elias_n and_o his_o action_n in_o this_o manner_n elias_n by_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o his_o prayer_n command_v the_o fire_n to_o fall_v from_o heaven_n and_o to_o destroy_v those_o fifty_o who_o despise_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o prophet_n say_v unto_o he_o in_o the_o name_n of_o a_o earthly_a power_n man_n of_o god_n the_o king_n have_v command_v thou_o to_o descend_v 1._o etc._n etc._n and_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o earthly_a power_n contemn_v that_o spiritual_a power_n which_o elias_n be_v endue_v with_o all_o and_o in_o scorn_n salute_v he_o homo_fw-la dei_fw-la man_n of_o god_n and_o in_o this_o manner_n he_o go_v forward_o thus_o can_v no●_n elias_n at_o who_o call_n fire_n deseend_v from_o heaven_n and_o devour_v the_o fifty_o man_n say_v to_o some_o prince_n and_o magistrate_n if_o he_o have_v be_v present_a sir_n because_o these_o soldier_n do_v contemn_v i_o and_o in_o i_o god_n who_o prophet_n i_o be_o run_v upon_o they_o and_o kill_v they_o or_o can_v not_o a_o earthly_a sword_n have_v execute_v the_o same_o office_n which_o the_o fire_n from_o heaven_n do_v perform_v if_o fire_n qu●th_v he_o be_v the_o more_o noble_a element_n than_o the_o earth_n yea_o or_o then_o the_o metal_n which_o be_v dig_v out_o of_o the_o earth_n i_o see_v not_o but_o that_o he_o who_o call_v fire_n from_o heaven_n to_o satisfy_v his_o commandment_n may_v not_o much_o more_o have_v bid_v the_o magistrate_n who_o bear_v the_o sword_n to_o draw_v out_o his_o sword_n for_o he_o against_o any_o king_n in_o the_o world_n whatsoever_o for_o which_o opinion_n of_o he_o this_o firmament_n or_o strength_n only_o be_v set_v down_o by_o he_o that_o it_o skill_v not_o much_o among_o wise_a man_n what_o be_v do_v by_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v alike_o in_o moment_n and_o weight_n i_o will_v not_o here_o add_v the_o four_o &_o five_o argument_n which_o he_o use_v out_o of_o the_o sacred_a history_n touch_v ozia_n ●6_n and_o athalia_fw-la 23._o because_o bellarmine_n have_v refer_v they_o among_o the_o example_n whereon_o we_o must_v deal_v in_o their_o place_n but_o these_o be_v those_o paraleipomena_n to_o which_o bellarmine_n do_v remit_v we_o and_o which_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n that_o he_o who_o be_v both_o a_o subtle_a and_o sharp_a disputer_n and_o a_o vehement_a orator_n do_v only_o light_o report_v but_o do_v not_o transfer_v into_o his_o own_o work_n see_v they_o do_v abound_v with_o so_o many_o and_o notorious_a fault_n that_o a_o man_n will_v think_v they_o be_v write_v not_o by_o a_o divine_a and_o a_o man_n exercise_v in_o the_o scripture_n but_o by_o some_o profane_a smatterer_n abuse_v intemperate_o divinity_n and_o the_o scripture_n so_o very_o little_o be_v there_o in_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o assume_v in_o they_o for_o argument_n which_o be_v consonant_a and_o agree_v with_o the_o subject_n in_o question_n chap._n xxxvi_o first_o then_o sanders_n be_v mistake_v and_o be_v very_o far_o wide_a in_o this_o that_o he_o imagine_v that_o the_o synagogue_n have_v any_o stroke_n in_o the_o abdication_n of_o saul_n for_o it_o be_v most_o manifest_a that_o the_o whole_a business_n be_v command_v denounce_v and_o in_o the_o issue_n accomplish_v and_o execute_v by_o the_o extraordinary_a judgement_n and_o commandment_n of_o god_n from_o who_o be_v all_o reign_n and_o power_n without_o any_o ordinary_a jurisdiction_n of_o the_o priest_n or_o of_o the_o synagogue_n whereby_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o comparison_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n &_o the_o synagogue_n or_o of_o samuel_n and_o the_o pope_n be_v very_o impertinent_o and_o ignorant_o make_v by_o he_o in_o this_o point_n for_o although_o we_o confess_v that_o which_o be_v the_o truth_n that_o the_o spiritual_a power_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v no_o less_o yea_o that_o it_o be_v fair_a more_o then_o of_o the_o synagogue_n yet_o therefore_o i_o mean_v out_o of_o the_o comparison_n of_o the_o power_n &_o authority_n of_o each_o church_n it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o the_o pope_n may_v deprive_v a_o king_n neglect_v or_o contemn_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n of_o the_o right_n of_o his_o kingdom_n &_o install_v another_o in_o his_o place_n because_o the_o synagogue_n be_v never_o endue_v with_o that_o power_n for_o it_o be_v no_o where_o read_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n that_o the_o synagogue_n of_o the_o jew_n or_o the_o h●●●_n priest_n thereof_o for_o the_o time_n do_v abrogate_v the_o kingdom_n from_o any_o lawful_a king_n of_o israel_n of_o judaea_n be_v never_o so_o wicke●_n distnate_a and_o civil_a or_o deprive_v he_o of_o the_o ●ight_a o●_n the_o kingdom_n as_o he_o say_v and_o substitute_v another_o in_o his_o place_n whence_o it_o fall_v out_o that_o no_o argument_n from_o thence_o nor_o no_o example_n may_v be_v draw_v in_o the_o new_a law_n i_o let_v pass_v that_o samuel_n although_o he_o be_v a_o great_a prophet_n yet_o he_o be_v not_o the_o chief_a priest_n nay_o not_o a_o priest_n at_o all_o but_o only_o a_o levite_n 〈…〉_z who_o therefore_o can_v do_v nothing_o against_o saul_n by_o a_o ordinary_a power_n of_o spiritual_a jurisdiction_n much_o less_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o secular_a judgement_n because_o he_o have_v public_o lay_v that_o down_o before_o when_o the_o people_n demand_v a_o king_n therefore_o samuel_n in_o the_o execution_n of_o this_o business_n do_v only_o perform_v a_o bare_a ministry_n almost_o against_o his_o will_n and_o strive_v both_o with_o prayer_n and_o tear_n against_o the_o same_o and_o have_v receive_v a_o special_a charge_n he_o discharge_v a_o extraordinary_a embassy_n be_v send_v from_o the_o lord_n as_o the_o messenger_n of_o his_o divine_a judgement_n and_o that_o appear_v by_o this_o that_o when_o he_o come_v to_o the_o king_n he_o say_v give_v i_o leave_v and_o i_o will_v tell_v thou_o what_o the_o lord_n have_v speak_v to_o i_o by_o night_n therefore_o he_o may_v forbear_v this_o argument_n which_o be_v to_o small_a purpose_n draw_v from_o the_o extraordinary_a ministry_n of_o samuel_n and_o the_o rejection_n of_o saul_n in_o regard_n that_o the_o ordinary_a authority_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n or_o pope_n have_v no_o comparison_n or_o proportion_n no_o conveniency_n or_o similitude_n with_o the_o same_o god_n present_o reject_v saul_n and_o take_v the_o kingdom_n from_o his_o posterity_n but_o he_o suffer_v other_o king_n who_o seem_v to_o be_v much_o more_o wicked_a than_o saul_n to_o reign_v over_o his_o people_n and_o to_o convey_v the_o kingdom_n to_o their_o child_n so_o have_v it_o seem_v good_a in_o his_o eye_n god_n the_o lord_n of_o revenge_n have_v do_v free_o 〈…〉_z and_o he_o have_v do_v all_o whatsoever_o he_o will_v 〈…〉_z neither_o be_v any_o other_o reason_n to_o belong_v it_o he_o have_v mercy_n on_o who_o he_o will_v have_v mercy_n and_o who_o he_o will_v be_v harden_v neither_o may_n any_o man_n say_v unto_o he_o 〈…〉_z why_o have_v thou_o make_v i_o thus_o must_v we_o believe_v the_o same_o of_o the_o church_n or_o of_o the_o pope_n they_o have_v it_o certain_a limit_n and_o bound_n which_o they_o can_v pass_v the_o church_n be_v govern_v or_o ought_v to_o be_v govern_v by_o law_n say_v joh_n de_fw-fr 〈…〉_z 〈…〉_z and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o permit_v neither_o to_o the_o church_n nor_o to_o the_o ruler_n thereof_o the_o pope_n by_o a_o absolute_a liberty_n and_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o god_n to_o determine_v of_o all_o kingdom_n and_o business_n and_o to_o dispose_v of_o all_o thing_n at_o their_o pleasure_n that_o only_o be_v lawful_a for_o they_o which_o be_v comprehend_v in_o the_o holy_a write_n or_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n teach_v their_o authority_n which_o see_v it_o be_v so_o there_o be_v none_o that_o have_v any_o skill_n in_o reason_v but_o may_v plain_o see_v that_o the_o argument_n derive_v from_o those_o thing_n which_o samuel_n do_v can_v by_o no_o mean_n be_v conclude_v to_o establish_v the_o pope_n authority_n unless_o it_o be_v deduce_v either_o from_o the_o ordinary_a power_n of_o the_o synagogue_n wherein_o notwithstanding_o samuel_n be_v not_o the_o chief_a to_o the_o ordinary_a authority_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n or_o from_o the_o extraordinary_a ministry_n of_o samuel_n to_o the_o extraordinary_a
general_o to_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v make_v by_o nature_n or_o art_n or_o hand_n whereas_o notwithstanding_o as_o touch_v humane_a action_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o that_o sentence_n have_v place_n only_o in_o those_o thing_n which_o man_n do_v of_o their_o own_o accord_n or_o upon_o a_o commission_n receive_v with_o free_a liberty_n of_o execution_n as_o for_o example_n that_o he_o be_v call_v a_o murderer_n who_o by_o villainy_n have_v be_v the_o cause_n of_o any_o man_n death_n by_o any_o mean_a or_o instrument_n because_o in_o such_o a_o crime_n it_o skill_v not_o what_o be_v make_v by_o those_o thing_n quae_fw-la eiusdem_fw-la ponderis_fw-la &_o momenti_fw-la sunt_fw-la but_o in_o the_o case_n wherein_o any_o thing_n be_v commend_v strict_o and_o by_o name_n to_o any_o man_n trust_n to_o be_v perform_v in_o a_o certain_a manner_n and_o after_o a_o certain_a form_n the_o law_n do_v not_o allow_v the_o committee_n to_o execute_v the_o same_o any_o other_o way_n as_o appear_z plain_o by_o the_o place_n which_o i_o relate_v above_o and_o infinite_a other_o of_o the_o civil_a and_o pontificial_a law_n his_o other_o error_n be_v that_o he_o think_v there_o be_v no_o odds_n nor_o difference_n if_o wicked_a man_n be_v strike_v with_o a_o divine_a thunderbolt_n from_o god_n or_o with_o force_n of_o weapon_n by_o the_o power_n of_o man_n because_o he_o say_v that_o they_o have_v both_o one_o weight_n for_o although_o there_o be_v one_o effect_n of_o all_o extreme_a punishment_n that_o be_v the_o death_n and_o destruction_n of_o the_o condemn_a yet_o there_o be_v much_o consideration_n to_o be_v have_v by_o what_o manner_n and_o mean_v the_o same_o be_v execute_v upon_o the_o guilty_a because_o there_o be_v degree_n as_o of_o crime_n so_o of_o pain_n and_o hereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o by_o the_o kind_n of_o the_o ultion_n and_o griceousnesse_n or_o lightness_n of_o the_o punishment_n we_o judge_v of_o the_o heinousness_n of_o the_o offence_n by_o the_o proportion_n and_o resemblance_n of_o the_o punishment_n with_o the_o fault_n 〈…〉_z for_o the_o distribution_n of_o punishment_n and_o reward_n do_v require_v a_o geometrical_a proportion_n the_o poet_n say_v pretty_o 3._o adsit_fw-la regula_n peccatis_fw-la quae_fw-la poenas_fw-la ●roget_v ae_z quas_fw-la nescutica_n dignum_fw-la horribili_fw-la sectere_fw-la fligello_fw-la but_o where_o great_a punishment_n do_v follow_v let_v he_o be_v correct_v with_o great_a punishment_n 50._o excellent_o say_v s._n augustine_n 1._o as_o all_o other_o thing_n who_o doubt_v but_o that_o this_o be_v the_o more_o heinous_a offence_n which_o be_v punish_v more_o severe_o therefore_o do_v he_o very_o undiscreetelie_o determine_v that_o all_o punishment_n be_v take_v by_o sword_n by_o fire_n by_o famine_n and_o by_o other_o mean_n be_v of_o the_o same_o weight_n and_o heaviness_n that_o he_o may_v conclude_v that_o the_o prophet_n have_v discharge_v his_o duty_n if_o he_o have_v procure_v to_o have_v they_o flame_n with_o the_o earthly_a sword_n who_o the_o lord_n say_v he_o will_v strike_v with_o a_o thunderbolt_n from_o heaven_n who_o do_v not_o know_v that_o the_o anger_n and_o revenge_n of_o almighty_a god_n do_v shine_n much_o more_o bright_o in_o punishment_n not_o which_o be_v inflict_v after_o the_o ordinary_a manner_n of_o man_n but_o be_v send_v strange_o &_o miraculous_o from_o heaven_n or_o who_o can_v weigh_v matter_n so_o uneven_o in_o his_o judgement_n as_o to_o say_v that_o they_o perish_v by_o punishment_n equal_a for_o grievousnesse_n who_o be_v swallow_v up_o by_o the_o gape_a earth_n descend_v alive_a into_o hell_n as_o well_o as_o those_o who_o be_v take_v away_o by_o the_o ordinary_a or_o extraordinary_a punishment_n of_o man_n law_n and_o hitherto_o i_o think_v i_o have_v say_v enough_o of_o these_o reason_n of_o sander_n which_o be_v omit_v by_o bellarmine_n not_o without_o cause_n now_o let_v we_o return_v out_o of_o this_o by-path_n to_o bellarmine_n again_o chap._n xxxvii_o hitherto_o have_v i_o bend_v the_o sharpness_n of_o my_o best_a understanding_n to_o inquire_v with_o diligence_n into_o all_o the_o reason_n which_o bellarmine_n or_o sanders_n have_v touch_v the_o temporal_a authority_n of_o the_o pope_n therefore_o now_o it_o remain_v that_o with_o the_o like_a care_n and_o endeavour_n i_o convert_v my_o mind_n and_o hand_n to_o examine_v the_o example_n propound_v by_o bellarmine_n which_o true_o be_v but_o a_o poor_a and_o a_o weak_a kind_n of_o proof_n for_o he_o pretend_v that_o his_o opinion_n be_v prove_v two_o manner_n of_o way_n by_o reason_n and_o by_o example_n i_o can_v have_v wish_v with_o all_o my_o heart_n that_o he_o have_v bring_v forth_o strong_a reason_n the_o affection_n which_o i_o bear_v to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a do_v so_o affect_v and_o possess_v i_o that_o i_o do_v very_o earnest_o desire_v that_o all_o the_o authority_n which_o this_o author_n do_v attribute_n unto_o she_o may_v be_v also_o allow_v by_o the_o best_a right_n that_o can_v be_v but_o we_o have_v hear_v his_o reason_n already_o now_o let_v we_o hear_v his_o example_n the_o first_o be_v say_v he_o 2._o paralip_n 26._o where_o we_o read_v that_o ozia_n the_o king_n when_o he_o usurp_v the_o priest_n office_n be_v by_o the_o high_a priest_n cast_v out_o of_o the_o temple_n and_o be_v stroke_n by_o god_n with_o a_o leprosy_n for_o the_o same_o offence_n be_v force_v to_o go_v out_o of_o the_o city_n and_o to_o leave_v his_o kingdom_n to_o his_o son_n for_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o he_o be_v put_v out_o of_o the_o city_n and_o government_n of_o the_o kingdom_n not_o of_o his_o own_o accord_n but_o by_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o priest_n for_o we_o read_v in_o the_o 13._o of_o levit._n whosoever_o say_v the_o law_n shall_v be_v desile_v with_o the_o leprosy_n and_o be_v separate_v by_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o priest_n he_o shall_v dwell_v alone_o without_o the_o campe._n see_v then_o this_o be_v a_o law_n in_o israel_n &_o withal_o we_o read_v 2_o paralip_n 26._o that_o the_o king_n dwell_v without_o the_o city_n in_o a_o solitary_a house_n and_o that_o his_o son_n do_v judge_v within_o the_o city_n the_o people_n of_o the_o land_n we_o be_v constrain_v to_o say_v that_o he_o be_v separate_v by_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o priest_n and_o consequent_o deprive_v of_o the_o authority_n of_o reign_v if_o therefore_o a_o priest_n can_v in_o time_n past_a judge_n a_o king_n for_o a_o corporal_a leprosy_n and_o deprive_v he_o of_o his_o kingdom_n why_o may_v not_o he_o do_v it_o now_o for_o a_o spiritual_a leprosy_n that_o be_v for_o heresy_n which_o be_v figure_v by_o the_o leprosy_n as_o augustine_n teach●th_v in_o quaest_n euangel_n lib._n 2._o quaest_n 40._o especial_o see_v 1_o cor._n 10._o paul_n do_v say_v that_o all_o happen_v to_o the_o jew_n in_o figure_n thus_o he_o i_o have_v often_o wonder_v and_o yet_o can_v leave_v wonder_v that_o man_n famous_a for_o the_o opinion_n of_o learning_n shall_v commit_v their_o thought_n to_o write_v in_o so_o slight_a and_o homely_a a_o fashion_n that_o a_o man_n will_v think_v they_o have_v not_o read_v the_o author_n which_o they_o commend_v or_o have_v not_o full_o understand_v those_o they_o have_v read_v or_o that_o of_o set_a purpose_n they_o will_v corrupt_v their_o meaning_n which_o fault_n be_v very_o common_a in_o our_o age_n wherein_o most_o of_o the_o writer_n follow_v the_o credit_n of_o other_o man_n do_v draw_v the_o testimony_n and_o authority_n of_o their_o assertion_n not_o from_o the_o fountain_n themselves_o but_o from_o the_o river_n and_o pipe_n be_v corrupt_o derive_v by_o the_o negligence_n and_o fault_n of_o other_o man_n so_o as_o look_v what_o the_o first_o have_v either_o malicious_o or_o negligent_o detort_v and_o wrest_v to_o another_o sense_n that_o other_o trust_v to_o their_o search_n and_o judgement_n do_v transcribe_v into_o their_o book_n for_o certain_a and_o undoubted_a testimony_n which_o although_o it_o be_v very_o seldom_o find_v in_o bellarmine_n be_v a_o faithful_a and_o a_o clear_a author_n yet_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o he_o follow_v unaduised_o sander_n and_o other_o have_v not_o err_v a_o little_a in_o the_o three_o chapter_n of_o the_o affirm_v the_o pope_n temporal_a authority_n especial_o in_o propound_v the_o former_a example_n and_o this_o follow_v i_o prove_v long_o ago_o in_o my_o book_n contra_fw-la monarchomachos_n that_o it_o be_v most_o false_a that_o ozia_n be_v deprive_v of_o the_o authority_n of_o his_o government_n by_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o priest_n for_o in_o very_a truth_n there_o be_v nothing_o more_o express_o deliver_v in_o the_o whole_a history_n of_o the_o king_n than_o that_o ●zias_n from_o the_o sixteen_o year_n of_o his_o age_n wherein_o he_o begin_v his_o reign_n remain_v
king_n continual_o unto_o the_o 68_o year_n which_o be_v the_o end_n of_o his_o life_n and_o that_o he_o be_v not_o any_o time_n deprive_v of_o the_o authority_n of_o his_o government_n indeed_o it_o be_v true_a he_o dwell_v apart_o in_o a_o house_n by_o itself_o and_o therefore_o by_o reason_n of_o his_o sickness_n he_o can_v not_o execute_v those_o duty_n of_o a_o king_n which_o consist_v in_o action_n but_o that_o take_v not_o from_o he_o his_o interest_n in_o his_o kingdom_n nor_o authority_n of_o government_n otherwise_o we_o must_v deny_v that_o child_n be_v inaugurate_v and_o crown_v as_o in_o time_n past●_n joas_n and_o josias_n and_o man_n of_o sawfull_a 22._o age_n be_v any_o king_n if_o once_o they_o fall_v into_o any_o grievous_a disease_n of_o mind_n or_o body_n see_v they_o be_v hinder_v by_o their_o youth_n these_o by_o their_o sickness_n from_o the_o procuration_n and_o government_n of_o the_o kingdom_n which_o consist_v in_o action_n for_o the_o scripture_n say_v in_o the_o 27._o year_n of_o jeroboam_fw-la king_n of_o israel_n reign_v azarias_n who_o be_v call_v both_o ozias_n and_o ●acharias_fw-la the_o son_n of_o amasias_n king_n of_o juda_n he_o be_v sixteen_o year_n of_o age_n when_o he_o begin_v to_o reign_v and_o reign_v 52._o year_n in_o jerusalem_n and_o again_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n in_o the_o 52_o year_n of_o azariah_n king_n of_o juda_n reign_v pha●ee_v the_o son_n of_o romelias_n over_o israel_n in_o samaria_n and_o josephus_n 〈◊〉_d that_o this_o izariah_n or_o oziah_n die_v in_o the_o 68_o yeer●_n of_o his_o age_n and_o the_o 52._o of_o his_o reign_n '_o if_o therefore_o 11._o ozias_n begin_v to_o reign_v be_v 16._o year_n of_o age_n and_o reign_v 52._o year_n as_o the_o scripture_n witness_v and_o die_v in_o the_o 68_o year_n what_o space_n i_o pray_v you_o in_o his_o life_n can_v be_v ●ound_v wherein_o he_o be_v judge_v and_o deprive_v of_o his_o right_n in_o his_o kingdom_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n his_o son_n be_v curator_n or_o regent_n to_o he_o as_o they_o be_v wont_n to_o have_v ●_o qui_fw-fr in_o ea_fw-la causasunt_fw-la ut_fw-la superesse_fw-la rebus_fw-la suis_fw-la non_fw-la possint_fw-la for_o it_o be_v add_v 〈…〉_z in_o that_o story_n joatham_n the_o son_n of_o the_o king_n govern_v the_o palace_n and_o rule_v the_o house_n of_o the_o king_n and_o judge_v the_o people_n of_o the_o land_n mark_v i_o pray_v you_o that_o joatham_n be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o the_o king_n in_o the_o life_n and_o sickness_n of_o his_o father_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o palace_n and_o ruler_n of_o the_o house_n of_o the_o king_n now_o he_o judge_v the_o people_n because_o judgement_n can_v not_o come_v to_o the_o king_n through_o the_o force_n of_o his_o disease_n and_o the_o separation_n by_o the_o prescript_n of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n as_o lyranus_fw-la teach_v in_o that_o place_n to_o be_v short_a the_o scripture_n say_v and_o ozias_n sleep_v with_o his_o father_n and_o they_o bury_v he_o in_o the_o field_n of_o the_o king_n sepulcher_n because_o he_o be_v leprous_a and_o joatham_n his_o son_n reign_v in_o his_o stead_n mark_v again_o that_o joatham_n begin_v not_o to_o reign_v but_o after_o the_o death_n of_o his_o father_n therefore_o although_o it_o be_v true_a that_o ozias_n by_o reason_n of_o his_o leprosy_n be_v separate_v by_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o priest_n because_o it_o be_v express_o provide_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o he_o be_v deprive_v of_o the_o authority_n of_o reign_v or_o enforce_v to_o renounce_v his_o kingdom_n to_o his_o son_n as_o these_o man_n false_o do_v aver_v the_o authority_n of_o reign_v and_o the_o administration_n of_o a_o kingdom_n do_v differ_v very_o much_o and_o no_o less_o than_o in_o the_o civil_a law_n propriety_n and_o possession_n the_o authority_n be_v always_o in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o king_n and_o be_v join_v with_o the_o right_n of_o the_o crown_n but_o the_o government_n and_o procuration_n or_o administration_n may_v fall_v into_o other_o man_n hand_n so_o as_o one_o may_v be_v king_n and_o another_o the_o governor_n whence_o they_o who_o in_o the_o minority_n or_o disease_n of_o king_n do_v bear_v the_o high_a place_n of_o government_n in_o the_o kingdom_n be_v honour_v with_o the_o title_n of_o governor_n regent_n tutor_n protector_z or_o some_o such_o like_a and_o they_o propound_v nor_o handle_v any_o public_a affair_n in_o their_o own_o name_n but_o in_o the_o name_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o king_n be_v either_o infant_n or_o sickly_a therefore_o this_o example_n of_o ozias_n be_v so_o far_o from_o help_v anything_o to_o this_o temporal_a authority_n of_o the_o pope_n over_o king_n as_o it_o make_v very_o much_o for_o to_o impugn_v and_o overthrow_v the_o same_o for_o if_o as_o he_o report_v out_o of_o the_o apostle_n and_o we_o confess_v that_o all_o thing_n befall_v to_o the_o jew_n in_o figure_n and_o if_o the_o corporal_a leprosy_n for_o which_o a_o man_n be_v separate_v from_o the_o multitude_n of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n and_o dwell_v alone_o without_o the_o camp_n be_v a_o figure_n of_o the_o spiritual_a leprosy_n that_o be_v of_o heresy_n by_o augustine_n his_o testimony_n to_o be_v short_a if_o the_o priesthood_n of_o aaroa_n be_v a_o figure_n of_o the_o priesthood_n of_o the_o new_a law_n out_o of_o these_o figure_n two_o argument_n be_v apposite_o draw_v to_o this_o question_n whereof_o the_o former_a do_v notable_o confirm_v the_o spiritual_a authority_n of_o the_o pope_n over_o christian_a king_n and_o prince_n the_o other_o prove_v that_o this_o temporal_a authority_n of_o he_o whereof_o we_o speak_v be_v altogether_o commentitious_a and_o forge_v usurp_a and_o contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n the_o former_a argument_n be_v frame_v thus_o as_o the_o priest_n in_o time_n past_o banish_v out_o of_o the_o temple_n king_n ozias_n be_v strike_v with_o the_o leprosy_n that_o he_o may_v dwell_v without_o the_o city_n so_o at_o this_o day_n the_o pope_n may_v judge_v and_o by_o excommunication_n separate_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o faithful_a a_o king_n infect_v with_o heresy_n which_o be_v a_o spiritual_a leprosy_n and_o so_o constrain_v he_o to_o dwell_v without_o the_o city_n that_o be_v without_o the_o church_n catholic_a until_o he_o be_v cleanse_v from_o his_o leprosy_n that_o be_v until_o he_o have_v absure_v his_o heresy_n but_o if_o such_o a_o leprosy_n stick_v by_o he_o till_o death_n he_o be_v not_o to_o be_v bury_v in_o the_o sepulcher_n of_o the_o king_n that_o be_v in_o the_o church_n but_o in_o the_o field_n because_o he_o be_v leprous_a that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o heretic_n now_o that_o i_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n may_v separate_v a_o heretic_n king_n by_o excommunication_n from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o faithful_a it_o must_v be_v understand_v of_o the_o spiritual_a separation_n of_o soul_n and_o not_o of_o body_n for_o subject_n ought_v not_o to_o deny_v their_o obedience_n to_o a_o excommunicate_a king_n the_o second_o argument_n may_v right_o be_v conclude_v in_o this_o form_n as_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o priest_n of_o a_o corporal_a leprosy_n in_o the_o old_a law_n wrought_v nothing_o but_o the_o separation_n of_o the_o leprous_a and_o relegation_n without_o the_o camp_n or_o city_n and_o as_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o priest_n touch_v the_o leprosy_n of_o azaria_n or_o ozia_n can_v not_o take_v from_o he_o the_o right_a of_o his_o kingdom_n but_o only_o impose_v on_o he_o a_o necessity_n to_o dwell_v by_o himself_o without_o the_o city_n for_o in_o that_o he_o do_v not_o actual_o as_o they_o say_v govern_v the_o kingdom_n that_o fall_v out_o not_o through_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o priest_n who_o judge_v of_o the_o leprosy_n but_o the_o force_n of_o the_o continual_a disease_n of_o his_o body_n so_o also_o at_o this_o day_n the_o censure_n and_o sentence_n of_o the_o pope_n whereby_o he_o judge_v and_o declare_v a_o king_n to_o be_v a_o heretic_n although_o it_o cause_v a_o king_n to_o remain_v without_o the_o city_n of_o god_n that_o be_v without_o the_o catholic_a church_n as_o have_v be_v say_v yet_o it_o can_v take_v from_o he_o the_o right_a and_o authority_n to_o reign_v and_o so_o the_o figure_n do_v very_o fit_o convene_v with_o the_o figure_v for_o in_o these_o figure_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n the_o image_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n over_o king_n be_v not_o only_o draw_v in_o lineament_n but_o full_o express_v to_o the_o life_n that_o if_o any_o fit_a argument_n may_v be_v draw_v from_o the_o shadow_n to_o the_o body_n from_o the_o figure_n to_o the_o figure_a none_o can_v more_o evident_o or_o assure_o be_v fit_v then_o these_o from_o the_o constitution_n
of_o the_o old_a law_n to_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o new_a but_o if_o the_o adversary_n out_o of_o all_o the_o figure_n of_o the_o old_a law_n can_v shape_v any_o one_o like_a to_o this_o for_o the_o strengthen_n of_o their_o opinion_n they_o shall_v have_v my_o voice_n for_o the_o bell_n sure_o they_o shall_v never_o find_v i_o against_o they_o therefore_o now_o let_v we_o see_v the_o second_o example_n chap._n xxxviii_o the_o second_o say_v he_o be_v out_o of_o 2._o paralip_n 23._o whereas_o when_o athalia_fw-la have_v tyrannous_o usurp_v the_o kingdom_n and_o maintain_v the_o worship_n of_o baal_n joiada_n the_o high_a priest_n call_v the_o centurion_n and_o the_o soldier_n and_o command_v they_o to_o kill_v athalia_fw-la and_o in_o her_o place_n do_v choose_v joas_n king_n now_o that_o the_o high_a priest_n do_v not_o counsel_n but_o command_v it_o appear_v by_o those_o word_n 4_o reg._n 11._o and_o the_o centurion_n do_v according_a to_o all_o which_o joiada_n the_o priest_n command_v they_o also_o by_o these_o word_n 2._o paralip_n 23._o but_o joiada_n the_o oigh_n priest_n go_v out_o to_o the_o centurion_n and_o captain_n of_o the_o army_n say_v unto_o they_o bring_v she_o out_o meaning_n athalia_fw-la the_o queen_n without_o the_o door_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o let_v she_o be_v slay_v without_o by_o the_o sword_n and_o that_o the_o cause_n of_o this_o deposition_n and_o execution_n of_o athalia_fw-la be_v not_o only_o her_o tyranny_n but_o also_o for_o that_o she_o maintain_v the_o worship_n of_o baal_n be_v plain_a out_o of_o those_o word_n which_o follow_v immediate_o after_o her_o death_n therefore_o say_v the_o scripture_n all_o the_o people_n go_v into_o the_o house_n of_o baal_n and_o destroy_v it_o and_o break_v down_o the_o altar_n and_o image_n thereof_o they_o slay_v also_o mathan_n the_o priest_n of_o baal_n sure_o i_o do_v not_o know_v what_o move_v bellarmine_n to_o thrust_v upon_o we_o this_o example_n so_o remote_a and_o far_o off_o from_o the_o matter_n and_o controversy_n unless_o because_o he_o have_v observe_v that_o it_o be_v propound_v by_o other_o before_o he_o fear_v peradventure_o lest_o if_o he_o have_v omit_v it_o he_o shall_v be_v accuse_v by_o some_o emulous_a adversary_n of_o negligence_n and_o prevarication_n to_o pope_n sixtus_n v._n who_o be_v beyond_o all_o measure_n imperious_a and_o haughty_a and_o not_o great_o favour_v the_o society_n of_o the_o jesuit_n determine_v to_o reduce_v that_o whole_a order_n to_o a_o straight_a rule_n and_o habit_n of_o life_n which_o shall_v be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o secular_a priest_n in_o colour_n form_n or_o some_o other_o outward_a mark_n therefore_o i_o do_v muse_n with_o myself_o how_o they_o obtain_v of_o he_o that_o bull_n that_o they_o may_v occupy_v the_o perpetual_a dictature_n of_o the_o university_n of_o pontimussa_n that_o be_v that_o they_o shall_v for_o ever_o be_v rector_n or_o precedent_n against_o the_o form_n and_o statute_n of_o that_o foundation_n make_v by_o gregory_n the_o xiii_o there_o be_v that_o think_v that_o the_o bull_n be_v supposititious_a that_o be_v devise_v and_o counterfeit_a sure_o although_o it_o be_v true_a and_o grant_v by_o sixtus_n yet_o it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v of_o force_n because_o it_o be_v obtain_v present_o after_o his_o creation_n at_o which_o time_n whatsoever_o the_o pope_n do_v grant_v be_v judge_v not_o so_o much_o to_o be_v obtain_v of_o they_o as_o to_o be_v extort_a from_o they_o 10._o but_o to_o the_o matter_n that_o the_o example_n touch_v joiada_n and_o athalia_fw-la belong_v nothing_o to_o this_o disputation_n it_o appear_v by_o this_o that_o all_o our_o controversy_n stand_v in_o this_o whether_o the_o pope_n be_v endue_v with_o so_o great_a authority_n over_o lawful_a king_n and_o prince_n secular_a that_o he_o may_v for_o certain_a cause_n cast_v they_o down_o from_o their_o throne_n and_o deprive_v they_o of_o the_o right_n of_o their_o kingdom_n and_o anoint_v and_o inaugurate_a other_o in_o their_o place_n but_o the_o example_n of_o athalia_fw-la be_v of_o a_o woman_n which_o hold_v the_o kingdom_n by_o no_o right_a but_o by_o most_o cruel_a and_o savage_a tyranny_n by_o force_n and_o villainy_n and_o by_o the_o bloody_a murder_n of_o the_o king_n house_n who_o stand_v therefore_o in_o that_o case_n that_o she_o may_v just_o be_v slay_v of_o any_o private_a person_n without_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o priest_n joiada_n but_o for_o that_o such_o a_o matter_n seem_v dangerous_a to_o attempt_v and_o hard_o to_o compass_v against_o she_o who_o be_v mother_n to_o ochozias_n the_o king_n decease_v therefore_o there_o be_v great_a need_n of_o the_o counsel_n and_o help_v of_o joiada_n the_o high_a priest_n or_o sure_o of_o some_o other_o who_o likewise_o either_o by_o the_o greatness_n of_o his_o authority_n or_o the_o opinion_n of_o holiness_n may_v assemble_v and_o even_o stir_v up_o the_o soldier_n and_o the_o people_n to_o undertake_v so_o noble_a and_o worthy_a a_o action_n and_o that_o this_o be_v do_v not_o so_o much_o by_o the_o commandment_n as_o advice_n of_o joiada_n it_o be_v plain_a by_o that_o which_o be_v say_v joiada_n the_o high_a priest_n send_v and_o take_v to_o he_o the_o centurion_n and_o soldier_n cause_v they_o to_o be_v bring_v into_o he_o into_o the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o he_o strike_v a_o covenant_n with_o they_o and_o that_o the_o interpreter_n do_v note_n in_o that_o place_n but_o the_o word_n iubere_fw-la or_o praecipere_fw-la be_v wont_a to_o be_v speak_v of_o every_o man_n who_o have_v the_o chief_a place_n in_o a_o faction_n or_o society_n therefore_o there_o be_v nothing_o find_v in_o this_o example_n which_o have_v any_o the_o least_o similitude_n or_o agreement_n with_o the_o assertion_n which_o be_v undertake_v by_o the_o adversary_n to_o prove_v the_o assertion_n be_v that_o lawful_a prince_n that_o be_v to_o say_v they_o who_o obtain_v kingdom_n and_o principality_n by_o right_a either_o of_o election_n or_o succession_n may_v for_o certain_a cause_n be_v depose_v from_o their_o government_n by_o the_o pope_n and_o than_o what_o do_v it_o help_v for_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o proposition_n to_o propound_v a_o example_n of_o a_o tyrant_n or_o the_o kill_n of_o a_o tyrant_n do_v they_o think_v that_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n between_o the_o true_a lord_n and_o lawful_a possessor_n and_o the_o spoiler_n and_o invader_n of_o possession_n which_o belong_v not_o to_o they_o now_o whether_o there_o be_v or_o no_o any_o other_o cause_n or_o reason_n to_o depose_v and_o slay_v she_o beside_o her_o tyranny_n it_o make_v no_o matter_n it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o she_o be_v a_o tyrant_n and_o a_o violent_a usurper_n of_o the_o kingdom_n insomuch_o as_o there_o be_v of_o her_o part_n no_o hindrance_n nor_o bar_n in_o law_n but_o that_o she_o may_v be_v cast_v headlong_o out_o of_o the_o seat_n and_o be_v slay_v by_o any_o of_o the_o people_n which_o can_v in_o like_o manner_n be_v say_v of_o a_o lawful_a king_n who_o person_n although_o it_o be_v wicked_a the_o law_n of_o a_o kingdom_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o rule_n ought_v always_o to_o protect_v and_o defend_v from_o all_o injury_n and_o humane_a punishment_n as_o we_o have_v prove_v otherwhere_o out_o of_o the_o write_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n now_o the_o three_o follow_v chap._n thirty-nine_o the_o three_o example_n say_v he_o be_v of_o s_o ambrose_n who_o be_v bishop_n of_o milan_n and_o by_o that_o the_o spiritual_a pastor_n and_o father_n of_o theodosius_n the_o emperor_n who_o ordinary_o do_v reside_v at_o milan_n do_v first_o excommunicate_v he_o for_o the_o slaughter_n which_o by_o his_o commandment_n be_v do_v at_o thessalonica_n second_o he_o enjoin_v he_o to_o make_v a_o law_n that_o the_o sentence_n give_v of_o the_o slaughter_n and_o of_o the_o publication_n of_o good_n of_o they_o who_o be_v slay_v shall_v not_o stand_v good_a till_o after_o thirty_o day_n from_o the_o pronounce_v of_o the_o sentence_n to_o the_o end_n that_o if_o he_o have_v through_o anger_n and_o precipitation_n of_o mind_n command_v any_o thing_n he_o may_v revoke_v it_o within_o the_o space_n of_o so_o many_o day_n but_o ambrose_n can_v not_o excommunicate_v theodosius_n for_o that_o slaughter_n unless_o he_o have_v first_o understand_v and_o judge_v of_o that_o cause_n although_o it_o be_v criminal_a and_o belong_v to_o a_o external_a court_n but_o he_o can_v not_o understand_v and_o judge_v a_o cause_n of_o that_o nature_n unless_o also_o he_o have_v be_v a_o lawful_a judge_n of_o theodosius_n in_o a_o external_a court._n beside_o to_o constrain_v the_o emperor_n to_o make_v a_o civil_a law_n and_o to_o prescribe_v unto_o he_o a_o form_n of_o a_o law_n do_v it_o not_o manifest_o declare_v that_o a_o bishop_n sometime_o do_v
the_o six_o be_v of_o zacharie_n say_v he_o who_o be_v desire_v by_o the_o nobility_n of_o france_n depose_v childerique_n and_o cause_v pipine_v the_o father_n of_o carolus_n magnus_n to_o be_v create_v king_n in_o his_o place_n before_o i_o speak_v any_o thing_n of_o this_o example_n it_o be_v worth_a my_o pain_n to_o unfold_v the_o dark_a story_n touch_v the_o same_o and_o brief_o to_o describe_v the_o whole_a action_n of_o zacharie_n join_v the_o circumstance_n on_o both_o side_n together_o with_o the_o opinion_n for_o proof_n whereof_o it_o be_v bring_v and_o by_o this_o mean_v it_o may_v more_o easy_o appear_v to_o the_o reader_n how_o small_a strength_n it_o have_v to_o confirm_v the_o proposition_n of_o the_o adversary_n first_o of_o all_o therefore_o in_o that_o story_n it_o be_v worthy_a the_o observation_n that_o childerique_n and_o diverse_a other_o meroningians_n that_o be_v king_n before_o he_o reign_v without_o any_o authority_n at_o all_o in_o their_o kingdom_n have_v nothing_o but_o the_o vain_a and_o idle_a name_n of_o a_o king_n for_o the_o treasure_n and_o power_n of_o the_o state_n be_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o officer_n who_o be_v call_v the_o major_n of_o the_o palace_n and_o who_o indeed_o sway_v the_o whole_a government_n of_o the_o kingdom_n who_o be_v so_o much_o above_o the_o king_n and_o order_v and_o govern_v they_o as_o the_o king_n possess_v nothing_o of_o his_o own_o beside_o the_o idle_a name_n of_o the_o king_n and_o some_o allowance_n assign_v he_o for_o his_o maintenance_n during_o life_n which_o the_o mayor_n of_o the_o palace_n make_v he_o in_o his_o discretion_n but_o one_o poor_a lordship_n in_o the_o country_n of_o a_o small_a revenue_n and_o in_o that_o a_o house_n where_o he_o keep_v a_o few_o servant_n to_o attend_v he_o for_o his_o necessary_a service_n and_o to_o wait_v upon_o he_o as_o eginhartus_n write_v in_o the_o life_n of_o charlemagne_n if_o any_o than_o do_v look_v more_o near_o into_o the_o matter_n he_o shall_v find_v that_o in_o those_o time_n there_o be_v after_o a_o sort_n two_o king_n in_o france_n one_o who_o like_o the_o king_n in_o the_o ●hesse_n have_v only_o the_o name_n of_o a_o king_n but_o no_o kingly_a authority_n as_o atmoinus_n speak_v but_o the_o other_o who_o be_v call_v the_o mayor_n of_o the_o palace_n in_o who_o consist_v the_o whole_a authority_n of_o the_o kingdom_n he_o in_o name_n only_o be_v under_o the_o king_n but_o in_o authority_n and_o power_n over_o the_o king_n so_o as_o he_o want_v nothing_o but_o the_o name_n for_o the_o full_a and_o absolute_a majesty_n of_o rule_v and_o reign_v which_o also_o at_o the_o last_o be_v give_v he_o by_o the_o people_n that_o the_o sovereign_a government_n which_o he_o sway_v may_v be_v signify_v by_o the_o title_n of_o a_o sovereign_a honour_n therefore_o atmoinus_n speak_v of_o charles_n martel_n father_n of_o pipine_n who_o overthrow_v a_o huge_a army_n of_o saracen_n rush_v into_o france_n out_o of_o spain_n king_n charles_n say_v he_o have_v beat_v and_o overcome_v the_o army_n of_o his_o enemy_n under_o christ_n the_o author_n and_o head_n of_o peace_n and_o victory_n return_v home_o in_o safety_n into_o france_n the_o seat_n of_o his_o government_n mark_v how_o he_o call_v the_o mayor_n of_o the_o palace_n a_o king_n by_o reason_n of_o that_o royal_a authority_n which_o he_o bear_v second_o in_o that_o story_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o the_o nobility_n of_o france_n be_v weary_a of_o the_o slothfulness_n of_o their_o idle_a king_n do_v with_o a_o wonderful_a consent_n convert_v their_o eye_n and_o heart_n to_o pipine_v mayor_n of_o the_o palace_n son_n to_o charles_n which_o do_v so_o animate_v he_o to_o the_o hope_n of_o the_o kingdom_n that_o he_o open_o without_o niceness_n affect_v the_o name_n of_o a_o king_n which_o that_o he_o may_v more_o easy_o compass_n without_o mislike_n and_o displeasure_n of_o the_o commons_o he_o resolve_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v first_o to_o be_v deal_v withal_o by_o a_o ambassador_n and_o his_o assent_n to_o be_v require_v judge_v indeed_o as_o the_o truth_n be_v that_o if_o the_o pope_n shall_v give_v his_o assent_n that_o the_o commons_o will_v easy_o rest_v in_o his_o judgement_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o holiness_n and_o reverend_a opinion_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a three_o we_o must_v understand_v that_o zacharie_n the_o pope_n be_v general_o advise_v withal_o in_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o king_n which_o reign_v at_o that_o time_n in_o france_n whether_o ought_v to_o be_v call_v king_n he_o who_o have_v only_o the_o name_n of_o a_o king_n and_o no_o royal_a authority_n or_o he_o who_o by_o his_o industry_n and_o wisdom_n do_v manage_v and_o govern_v all_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o state_n and_o that_o he_o the_o same_o pope_n answer_v general_o again_o that_o it_o be_v better_a that_o he_o shall_v be_v call_v king_n in_o who_o the_o sovereign_a authority_n do_v reside_v by_o which_o answer_n the_o nobility_n be_v induce_v do_v elect_v pipine_n king_n there_o be_v no_o question_n but_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v true_o acquaint_v in_o hypothesi_fw-la that_o be_v in_o particular_a that_o childerique_n be_v to_o be_v abandon_v who_o carry_v only_o the_o false_a name_n of_o a_o king_n and_o that_o pipine_n be_v in_o his_o place_n to_o be_v advance_v to_o the_o crown_n but_o i_o suppose_v that_o he_o answer_v so_o general_o for_o that_o the_o proposition_n be_v deliver_v in_o general_a term_n carry_v no_o note_n of_o any_o certain_a person_n and_o leave_v to_o the_o nobility_n of_o france_n their_o judgement_n entire_a and_o free_a to_o collect_v from_o thence_o that_o which_o they_o desire_v and_o so_o the_o pope_n do_v not_o simple_o depose_v childerique_n but_o give_v his_o assent_n with_o the_o deposer_n but_o because_o his_o consent_n be_v especial_o regard_v therefore_o certain_a historian_n do_v precise_o say_v that_o he_o depose_v childerique_n last_o in_o that_o story_n it_o must_v be_v serious_o and_o diligent_o weigh_v that_o zacharie_n the_o pope_n have_v hear_v pipinus_fw-la his_o ambassador_n touch_v the_o change_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o deposition_n of_o childerique_n judge_v it_o to_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o such_o novelty_n and_o difficulty_n also_o as_o at_o the_o first_o he_o dare_v not_o entertain_v the_o thought_n of_o so_o great_a a_o enterprise_n although_o that_o by_o this_o time_n he_o have_v understand_v sufficient_o that_o the_o sloth_n and_o idleness_n of_o the_o merovingians_n do_v great_o endammage_n the_o church_n and_o christian_a commonwealth_n until_o such_o time_n as_o he_o be_v certain_o persuade_v and_o see_v that_o the_o whole_a nobility_n of_o france_n do_v favour_n pipin_n and_o desire_v he_o for_o their_o king_n and_o moreover_o that_o childericque_n be_v the_o last_o of_o the_o race_n of_o the_o merovingians_n without_o child_n so_o dull_a and_o blockish_a that_o he_o can_v not_o tell_v how_o to_o grieve_v for_o the_o loss_n of_o his_o kingdom_n as_o be_v fit_a for_o he_o neither_o be_v there_o any_o that_o will_v moan_v his_o case_n these_o be_v the_o inducement_n which_o be_v join_v with_o a_o special_a love_n &_o affection_n which_o the_o pope_n do_v bear_v to_o pipine_v for_o that_o he_o and_o his_o father_n charles_n have_v with_o many_o good_a office_n deserve_v well_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o apostolic_a sea_n do_v move_v zacharie_n to_o essent_fw-la to_o the_o french_a who_o desire_v this_o change_n of_o their_o king_n these_o thing_n although_o they_o be_v in_o this_o manner_n write_v touch_v this_o business_n yet_o have_v we_o great_a cause_n to_o doubt_v of_o the_o justice_n of_o that_o fact_n i_o know_v that_o bellarmine_n in_o other_o place_n out_o of_o too_o much_o good_a opinion_n of_o the_o equity_n of_o this_o fact_n of_o zachary_n do_v bold_o affirm_v that_o no_o sober_a man_n will_v deny_v that_o that_o act_n be_v just_a but_o he_o allege_v nothing_o but_o that_o the_o wise_a man_n live_v may_v affirm_v for_o all_o that_o that_o it_o be_v injust_a i_o say_v he_o bring_v no_o probable_a and_o forcible_a reason_n whereby_o a_o wise_a man_n may_v persuade_v himself_o that_o the_o pope_n do_v just_o assent_v to_o the_o french_a man_n in_o the_o deposition_n of_o childericke_n since_o that_o in_o no_o case_n we_o ought_v to_o do_v ill_a that_o good_a although_o it_o be_v very_o great_a may_v come_v thereof_o now_o we_o have_v sufficien_o declare_v that_o for_o a_o lawful_a king_n to_o be_v depose_v by_o his_o own_o subject_n or_o to_o consent_v to_o the_o deposer_n see_v he_o have_v god_n only_o above_o he_o to_o who_o only_o he_o be_v bind_v to_o yield_v account_n of_o his_o action_n be_v by_o itself_o and_o simple_o evil_a and_o the_o two_o reason_n which_o he_o use_v